Cave. Lives of the most eminent fathers of the church that flourished in the first four centuries; with an historical account of the state of paganism under the first Christian emperors. 1840. Volume 1.
Cave. Lives of the most eminent fathers of the church that flourished in the first four centuries; with an historical account of the state of paganism under the first Christian emperors. 1840. Volume 1.
Cave. Lives of the most eminent fathers of the church that flourished in the first four centuries; with an historical account of the state of paganism under the first Christian emperors. 1840. Volume 1.
J
922.2 C3M
1
CoXttmtjia 'Slnlucrsltij
AviS
• \i:*/ifc?-:' '^.}'i^^
)i(.^V:C\\
LIVES
OF THE MOST EMINENT
EY
WILLIAM CAVE, D. D.
BY
VOL. 1.
IJBIIARY.
OXFORD,
PRINTED BY J. VINCENT,
FOR THOMAS T EG G, 73, C HEAP S I D E, L ND N.
1840.
ADVERTISEMENT TO THE PRESENT EDITION.
value. He need therefore only state what his task has been
in preparing the present edition for the press. The text has
been carefully revised throughout, and the authorities quoted
a 2
^-v wr i^
TABLE OF EDITIONS REFERRED TO.
Athcnagoras, cum Jlstino Mart. Dionis Excerpta, (cum Polybio,) Par. 1634.
Clemens RomaniiR, inter Patrks Apostoli- Firmicus, Matom. de error prof, relig. cum
COK. Minuc. Felic. per J. a Wower, O.roii.
CodinuR, orig. Constant, cum Const. Ma- fiotbofrcdus, \'et. orb. descript. Ceiier.
Gregorius Nazianzen, Lut. Par. 1609, Philostorgius cum Eusebii Hist. Eccl.
Idatius, Fasti consulares, intcE opera Sir- Sandius, Hist. Eccl. Cosmop. 1669.
Ignatius, inter Patres Apostolicos. Socrates, Hist. EccL cum Eusebii Hist.
Leontius, in bibl. Patrum, Gr. Lat. Par. Symmachus, Epistt. Par. 1604.
Libanius, Lips, et Lutet. 1616-27. Synesius, cum Cyril. Hieros. Lut. Par, 1631.
Lucianus, Samosat. Salmant. 1618. Theodor. Lect. cum Eusebii Hist. Eccl.
Nicephorus, Hist. Eccl. Par. 1630. Trebonius Pollio inter Rom. Hist.
course of nature ; nor are they satisfied with the present state
of things, but pursue the notices of former ages, and are desirous
see forwards and spy what lies concealed in the womb of fu-
* In Oratore.
;
vlii PREFACE.
and proper rules and instances that may form us to a life of true
the Jewish nation, who from the creation of the world conveyed
down the records of above two thousand five hundred and fifty
annals of cities, partly out of the books kept in the temple, and
''
Ap. Dion. Hiilic. Tltpl K6ywv i^tr.
PREFACE. ix
Maximus, who kept them at his own house, that the people
Here we find with what infinite care those divine records, which
the world. With how incomparable a zeal good men have " con-
tended earnestly for that faith which was once delivered to the
saints ;" with what a bitter and implacable fury the enemies of
religion have set upon it, and how signally the Divine Provi-
chief upon their own heads. Here we see the constant succession
the prophets, the noble army of martyrs ;" who with the most
X FRKFACE.
are the instances of piety and virtue. For however later ages
eminent for the practice and virtues of a holy life. The divine
minds of men, and the spirit of religion was more active and
vigorous, till men by degrees began to be debauched into that
the world.
what records there are of the state of the church before our
by what hands the first affairs of the Christian church have been
transmitted to us. As for the life and death, the actions and
miracles of our Saviour, and some of the first acts of his apostles,
to the world. The first that engaged in this way was Hegesippus,
'
Hist. Angl. "•
Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 24.
PREFACE. xi
from our Lord's death till his own time. But these, alas ! are
long since lost. The next that succeeded in this province, though
to recount, from the birth of our Lord till his time, the most
the first preachers and planters of the gospel, the bishops that
presided in the most eminent sees, the most noted errors and
heresies, the calamities that befell the Jewish state, the attempts
« Cod. CCXXXll. J
Lib. i. c 1.
xii PREFACE.
blessed nnd liappy period that was put to them by the conversion
of Constantino the Great. All this accordingly he digested in
idle and improbable stories, and men took what liberty they
tion, that Laertius has written the lives of philosophers with more
truth and chasteness than many have done the lives of the saints.
Upon this account, a great and general outcry has been made
against Simeon Metaphrastes, as the father of incredible legends,
and one that has notoriously imposed upon the Avorld by the
most fabulous reports. Nay, some, to reflect the more disgrace
upon him, have represented him as a petty schoolmaster : a
the persuasions not only of some great ones of that time, (he
flourished under Leo the Wise about the year 900, but principally
wrote under the reign of his successor,) but of the emperor him-
x'lv l'RKKA(JE.
self", was prevailed with to reduce the lives of the saints into
order : to which end, hy his own infinite labour, and the no less
style rude and barbarous, he digested the history into order, and
clothed it in more polite and elegant language : others, that
things not from the writings of those that had gone before him,
but forged them of his own head. Not to say, that things have
at his door, of which he never was the father, it being usual with
some, when they met with the life of a saint, the author whereof
And indeed St. Ilierom, Nicephorus, and the rest, do not only
build upon his foundation, but almost entirely derive their ma-
terials from him. As for Socrates, Sozomen, Theodoret, and the
PREFACE. XV
*
managed. The first that to any purpose broke the ice after the
of the fathers, and all the ancient monuments of the church, col-
vided into centuries, and each century into fifteen chapters, into
each of which, as into its proper classes and repository, they re-
and the heresies that arose in it ; the rites and ceremonies, the
the Jews, the religion of " them that were without," and the
political revolutions of that age : a method accurate and useful,
standing the aifairs of the church. The four first centuries were
those who were able and willing to furnish out one more entire
and perfect. And yet take it with all the faults and disad-
vantages that can be charged upon it, and they bear no propor-
tion to the usefulness and excellency of the thing itself.
This course he held for thirty years together, seven several times
going over the history of the church. Thus trained up, and
endeavours, and written all with his own hand, and that too in
was by which he had infinitely more obliged the world than can
be well expressed, had he managed it with as much faithfulness
fore drew the face of the ancient church, not as antiquity truly
and the writer of his Life,'' more than once expressly affirm, that
'
Epist. Ded. ad. Sixt. V. vol. i. Annal. praefix.
vol,. I. t
vviii PREFACE.
his design was to det'ond the traditions, and to preserve tlie
dignity of that chnrch against the late innovators, and the la-
partiality and the interest of a cause spoil the most brave and
generous undertakings.
What has been hitherto prefaced, the reader, I hope, will not
for some of the succeeding ages. This I then wholly laid aside,
gion of the empire, and the records of the church furnish us with
out vanity assure him, that there is scarce any material passage
of church-antiquity of which, in some of these Lives, he will not
those ages maimed and lame only in its main limbs and parts,
shortly from a very able hand. In the mean time, for my own
part, and so far as may be useful to the purposes of the following
the accounts given in his history, which being written after his
searches, and to have passed the judgment of his riper and more
258
The
The
Life of St. Theophilus, Bishop of Antioch
280
374
Chronological Table of the first three Ages of the Christian Church - - - 438
LIVES
OF THE MOST EMINENT
COI.COI.L,. X
IJBRARY
^ N.YORK.
INTRODUCTION.
Thb several periods of the three first ages. Our Lord's coming, and the seasonableness
of it for the propagation of the gospel. His entrance upon his prophetic office, and
the sum of his ministr}^ The success of his doctrine, and the several places where
he preached. The story of Agbarus not altogether improbable. Our Lord's death.
What attestation given to the passages concerning Christ by heathen writers. The
testimony of Tacitus. Pilate's relation sent to Tiberius. The Acts of Pilate what.
Pilate's letter now extant, spurious. The apostles entering upon their commission,
and first acts after our Lord's ascension. How long they continued- in Judea. Their
dispersion to preach in the Gentile provinces, and the success of The state of the
it.
church after the apostolic age. The mighty progress of Christianity. The numbers
and quality of its converts. Its speedy and incredible success in all countries, noted
out of the writers of those times. The early conversion of Britain to Christianity.
The general declension of Paganism. The silence and ceasing of their oracles. This
acknowledged by Porphyry to be the effect of the Christian religion appearing in the
the most acceptable sacrifice. Their incomparable patience and constancy under suf-
ferings. A brief survey of the ten Persecutions. The first begun by Nero. His
brutish extravagances, and inhuman cruelties. His burning Rome, and the dreadful-
ness of that conflagration. This charged upon the Christians, and their several kinds
of punishment noted out of Tacitus. The chief of them that suffered. The Persecu-
tion under Domitian. The vices of that prince. The cruel usage of St. John. The
third begun by Trajan. His character. His proceeding against the Christians as
illegal societies. Pliny's letter to Trajan concerning the Christians, with the emperor's
answer. Adrian, Trajan's successor ; a mixture in him of vice and virtue. His per-
secuting the Christians. This the fourth Persecution. The mitigation of it, and its
breaking out again under Antoninus Pius. The excellent temper and learning of
M. Aurelius. The fifth Persecution raised by him. Its fierceness in the East, at
Rome, especially in France ; the most eminent that suffered there. The emperor's
victory in his German wars gained by the Christians' prayers. Severus's temper : his
cruelty towards the Christians. Tiie ciiief of the martyrs under the sixth Persecution.
Maximinus's immoderate ambition and barbarous cruelty. The author of the seventh
^^ Persecution. This not universal. The common evils and calamities charged upon
the Christians. Decius the eighth persecutor ; otherwise an excellent prince. The
VOL. I. n ^
2 I NTHODLCTION.
violence of tliis Persecution, and llie most noted sufferers. The foundations of nio-
nnchisin when laid. The ninth Persecution, and its rage under Valerian. The most
eminent martyrs. The severe punishment of Valerian his miserable us;igc by the
:
Persian king. The tenth Persecution begun under Dioclesian, and when. The fierce-
ness and cruelty of that time. The admirable carriage and resolution of the Chris-
tians under nil these sufferings. The proper influence of this argument to convince
the world. The whole concluded with Lactantius's excellent reasonings to this
purpose.
I. The
state of the Chi-istian church in the three first ages of it
may be considered under a threefold period as it was first :
up and prospered from the apostolic age till the times of Con-
stantine,when the empire submitted itself to Christianity. God,
who former times was pleased by various methods of revela-
in
tion to convey his will to mankind, " hath in these last days
spoken to us by his Son." For the great blessing of the pro-
mised seed after a long succession of several ages being come to
its just maturity and perfection, God was resolved " to perform
the mercy promised to the fathers, and to remember his holv
covenant, the oath which he sware to our father Abraham."
Accordingly, " In the fulness of time God sent his Son." It was
in the declining part of Augustus's reign, when this great Am-
bassador arrived from heaven, to publish to the world the glad
tidings of salvation. A period of time (as ''Origen observes)
wisely ordered by the divine providence. For the Roman em-
pire being now in the highest pitch of its grandeur, all its parts
united under a monarchical government, and an universal peace
spread over all the provinces of the empire, that had opened
a
way and uninterrupted commerce with all nations, a
to a free
smoother and was hereby jn-epared for the pub-
sj)cedier passage
lishing the doctrine of the gospel, which the apostles and
first
preachers of religion might with the greater ease and .security
carry up and down to all quarters of the world. As for the
Jews, their minds were awakened about this time with busy
expectations of their Messiah's coming : and no sooner was the
birth of the holy Jesus proclaimed by the arrival of the eastern
magi, who came to pay homage to him, l)ut Jcrusah^m was filled
with noise and tumult, the Sanhedrin was convened, and con-
sulted by Herod, who, jealous of his late gotten sovereignty, was
resolved to dispatch this new competitor out of the way. De-
luded in his hopes of discovery by the magi, he betakes himself
to acts of open force and cruelty, commanding all infants under
two years oldto be put to death, and among them it seems his
own which made ''Augustus pleasantly say, (alluding to the
son,
Jewish custom of abstaining from swine''s flesh,) " It is better to
be Herod's hog than his son." But the providence of God se-
B 2
t INTRODUCTION.
the account of his own authority and power, or beg a precarious
enterttiinmont of it ; he did not tell men tliev niunt believe hitn,
because he said he came from God, and had his warrant and
commission to instruct and reform the world, but gave them the
most satisfactory and convictive evidence, by doing such miracles
as were beyond all powers and contrivances either of art or
nature, whereby he unanswerably demonstrated, that "he was a
teacher come from God, in that no man could do those miracles
which he did, except God were with him." And because he
himself was in a little time to return back to heaven, he or-
dained twelve, whom he called apostles, as his immediate
delegates and vicegerents, to whom he deputed his authority
and power, furnished them with miraculous gifts, and left them
to carry on that excellent religion which he himself had begun,
to whose assistance he joined seventy disciples, as ordinary
coadjutors and companions to them. Their commission for the
present was limited to Palestine, and they sent out only "'
to
seek and to save the lost sheep of the house of Israel."
III.How great the success of our Saviour's ministry was,
may be guessed from that complaint of the Pharisees, " Behold
the world is gone after him;''"''' people from all parts in such vast
multitudes flocking after him, that they gave him not time for
necessary solitude and retirement. Indeed he " went about
doing good, preaching the word throughout all Judea, and
healing all that were possessed of the devil."
seat of his The
ordinary abode was Galilee, residing for the most part (says one
of the ancients'') in Galilee of the Gentiles, that he might there
sow and reap the first fruits of the calling of the Gentiles. We
usually find him preaching at Nazareth, at Cana, at Corazin and
and the cities about the sea of Tiberias, but especially
}3ethsaida,
at Capernaum, the metropolis of the province, a place of great
conmierce and traflic. He often visited Judea and the parts
about Jerusalem, whither he was wont to go up at the paschal
solemnities, and some of the greater festivals, that so the ge-
neral concourse of people at those times might minister the fitter
opportunity to spread the net, and to communicate and impart
his doctrine to them. Nor did he, who was -to be a common
Saviour, and came to break down the partition-wall, disdain to
converse with the Samaritans, so contemptible and hateful to
•^
Jolin xii. 19. "i
F.usoK Donionstr. Kvjing. 1. i.\. p. 4'MK
INTRODUCTION. 5
badge of those that should profess his religion. And now the
fatal hour was at hand being betrayed by the treachery of one
:
« Hist. Eccl. 1, i. c. 1 3.
6 INTRODUCTION.
deinn and execute liini upon the cross, several of themselves
vindicating his innocency, that he was a "righteous man," and
" the Son of God." The third day after his interment he rose
again, appeared to and conversed with his disciples and followers,
and having taken care of the affairs of his church, given a larger
commission, and fuller instructions to his apostles, he took his
leave of them, and visibly ascended into heaven, and "sat down
on the right hand of God, as head over all things to the church,
angels, authorities, and powers being made subject unto him."
V. The faith of these passages concerning our Saviour, are not
only secured to us by the report of the evangelical historians,
and that justified by eye-witnesses, the evidence of miracles, and
the successive and uncontrolled consent of all ages of the church,
but (as to the substance of them) by the plain confession of
heathen writers, and the enemies of Christianity. 'Tacitus tells
us, that the author of this religion was Christ, who under the
reign of Tiberius was put to death by Pontius Pilate, the pro-
''
Apol. r. ."). of c. '21.
'
INTRODUCTION. 7
at Rome to keep the Acts of the senate and the people, but for
the governors of provinces to keep account of what memorable
things happened in their government, the Acts whereof they
transmitted to the emperor. And thus did Pilate during the
procuratorship of his province. How long these Acts remained
in being, I know not : but in the controversy about Easter, we
find the Quartodecimans ^ justifying the day on which they ob-
served it from the Acts of Pilate, wherein they gloried that they
had found the truth. Whether these were the Acts of Pilate
to which Justin appealed, or rather those Acts of Pilate drawn
up and published by the command of Maximinus, Dioclesian's '
'
Apol. i. c. 35. ''
Epiph. Haeres. xxx. sive L. vol. i. p. 419.
'
Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. ix. c. 5. >" Ad calcem lib. de Excid. urb. Hieros.
8 INTRODUCTION.
apostles." Being next endued with power t'roiii on higli, (as our
Lord had j)ronii!;iedthem,) furnislied with the miraculous gifts of
theHoly Ghost, they set themselves to preach in places of the
greatest concourse, and to the faces of their greatest enemies.
They w ho but a while before fled at the first approach of danger,
now boldly plead the cause of their crucified Master, with the
immediate hazard of their lives. And that nothing might inter-
rupt them in this employment, they instituted the office of
deacons, who nnght attend the inferior services of the church
while they devoted themselves to what was more immediately
necessary to the good of souls. By which prudent course religion
got ground apace, and innumerable converts were daily added
to the faith : till a persecution arising upon St. Stephcn"'s mar-
tyrdom, banished the church out of Jerusalem, though this also
proved its advantage in the event and issue, Christianity being
by means the sooner spread up and down the neighbour
this
countries. The apostles, notwithstanding the rage of the perse-
cution, remained still at Jerusalem, only now and then dis-
patching some few of their number to confirm and settle the
plantations, and to propagate the faith, as the necessities of the
church required. And thus they continued for near twelve years
together, our Lord himself having commanded them not to de-
part Jerusalem and the parts thereabouts, till twelve years after
his ascension, as the ancient tradition mentioned both by Apol-
lonius" and Clemens Alexandrinus" informs us. And now they
thought it high time to apply themselves to the full execution of
that conmiission w^hich Christ had given them, "to go teach and
bapti/e all nations." Accordingly having settled the general
afi'airs and concernments of the church, they betook themselves
to the several provinces of the C-entile world, preaching the
gospel to every nation under heaven, so that even in a literal
sense " their sound Avent into all the earth, and their words
unto the ends of the world." " Infinite multitudes of people in
all cities and countries, (says Eusebius,') like corn into a well-
filled granary, being brought in by that grace of God that brings
to continue St. John to a very great age beyond any of the rest,
that he might superintend and cultivate, confirm and establish
what they had planted, and be as a standing and lively oracle,
to which they might from all parts have recoui'se in any consi-
derable doubts and exigences of the church, and that he might
seal and attest the truth of those things, which men of corrupt
and perverse minds even then began to call in question.
VII. Hence then we pass on to survey the state of the church
from the apostolic age till the times of Constantine, for the space
of at least two hundred years. And under this period we shall
principally remark two things. What progress the Christian
religion made in the world. Secondly, what it was that con-
agree to retire out of the lioman enii)ire, the world would stand
amazed at that solitude and desolation that would ensue upon it,
and they would have more enemies than friends or citizens left
among them. And he " bids president Scapula consider, that if
he went on with the persecution, what he would do with those
many thousands both of men and women, of all ranks and ages,
that would readily otter themselves, what firesand swords he
must have to dispatch them. Nor is this any more than what
IMiny'' liimself confesses to the emperor, that the case of the
•> Contr. Ceh. 1. i. c. --'7. vol. i. j.. 345. ' Ibid. 1. iii. c. 24. vol. i. p. 461.
• Uiiil. I. i. c. 7. vol. i. p. 3'2o. •
Adv. Cent. I. ii. p. '21.
" Apol. c. :i7. X Ad Scapul. c. :..
J"
Ad Traj. 1. x. ppist. 97.
. INTRODUCTION. 11
all the earth, and their words to the ends of the world. For in
whom but Christ did all nations believe ? Parthians, Medes,
Elamites, the inhabitants of Mesopotamia, Armenia, Phrygia,
and Cappadocia, of Pontus, Asia, and Pamphylia, those who
dwell in Egypt, Africa, and beyond Cyrene, strangers at Rome,
Daci, the Germans and the Scythians, together with manv undis-
covered countries, many islands and provinces unknown to us,
which he professes himself unable to reckon up. In all which
places (says he) the name of Christ reigns, as before whom the
gates of all cities are set open, and to whom none are shut;
before whom gates of brass fly open, and bars of iron arc snapt
asunder." To which Arnobius^ adds the Indians, the Persians,
the Serre, and all the islands and provinces which are visited by
the rising or setting sun, yea, and Rome itself, the empress of all.
nu8 hither upon that errand. Not that this was the first time
that the gospel made its way through the 0DKeav6<; aTrepavro?,
(as Clemens' and so the ancients con-
calls the British ocean,
stantly style it,) " the unpassable ocean, and those worlds which
are beyond it;" that is, the liritannic islands: it had been here
many years before, though proljably stifled and overgrown with
the ancient jjaganism and idolatry. St. Clemens = tells us of
St. Van], that he preached both in the East and West; and
liaving instructed the whole world in righteousness, made his
way to the utmost bounds of the West bv which he must either :
prudent and subtle heads among them, who stood up for the
rites and solemnities of their religion, were forced to turn thera
ways to support and prop it up. Indeed, some time before our
Saviour's incarnation, the most celebrated oracle at Delphos had
lost its credit and reputation, as after his appearance in the
world they sunk and declined every day whereof their best ;
it. And here not to insist upon the blessing of the divine pro-
vidence, which did immediately superintend its prosperity and
welfare, nor upon the intrinsic excellency of the religion itself,
which carried essential characters of divinity upon it, sufficient to
recommend it to every wise and good man, there were five things
among others that did especially conduce to make way for it the ;
IG INTHODrCTION.
fioienllypleaded by the Christian apologists. That such lui-
lacnlous powers were then ordinary in the church, wo have the
concurrent testimonies of all the first writers of it. Justin
Martyr' tells the emperor and the senate, that our Lord wa«
born for the subversion of the demons, which they might know
from the very things done in their sight for that very many ;
nreus" assures us, that in his time the Christians, enabled by the
grace of Christ, raised the dead, ejected demons and unclean
.spirits ; the persons so dispossessed coming over to the church
'
Apol. i. p. 4'). •" Dial, cum Tryph. p. 247, &c. p. 30-2.
" Adv. Hares. 1. ii. c. oH. p. 21.'; ; r. .57. p. 218. " Apol. c. 23. p. 22.
P Ad S<iiji. r. 2. p. Ci). I Contr. CVIb. 1. ii. c. 48. vol. i. p. 422, 3.
INTRODUCTION. 17
^liimself had seen many, who by having the name of God and
Christ called over them, had been delivered from the greatest
evils, frenzy and madness, and infinite other distempers, which
neither men nor devils had been able to cure. What influence
these miraculous effects had upon the world, he lets us know
elsewhere. "The apostles of our Lord (says he*) without these
miraculous powers would never have been able to have moved
their auditors, nor persuaded them to desert the institutions of
their country, and to embrace their new doctrine and having ;
forge and feign them. But God bears witness with my con-
science, that I do not endeavour by falsely-contrived stories, but
by various powerful instances to recommend the divine religion
of the holy Jesus. More testimonies of this kind I could easily
produce from Minucius Felix, Cyprian, Arnobius, and Lactan-
tius, but that these are enough to my purpose.
XIII. Another advantage that exceedingly contributed to the
triumph of Christianity, was the singular learning of many, who
became champions to defend it for it could not but be a mighty :
' Contr. Cels. 1. iii. q. 24. vol. i. p. 461. " Ibid. 1. i. c 46. vol. i. p. .361.
VOL. I. C
:
IS INTKODUCTION.
against its most virulent opposers. It is true indeed the gospel
at its first own naked strength, and
setting out was left to its
in external helps to assist it. And herein the care of the divine
providence was very remarkable, that as miracles became less
common and frequent in the church, God was pleased to raise
up, even from among the Gentiles themselves, men of profound
abilities, and excellent learning, who might toi? olKeloL<i irTepoU
^dWeiv, (as Julian* said of the Christians of his time,) beat
them at their own weapons, and wound them with arrows drawn
out of their own quiver and it was high time to do so for the
; :
Gentiles did not only attack the Christians and their religion by
methods of cruelty, and by arts of insinuation, not only object
what wit and subtilty could invent, to bear any shadow and
pretence of reason, but load them with the blackest crimes,
which nothing but the utmost malice and prejudice could ever
suspect to be true. This gave occasion to the Christian apolo-
gists, and the first writers against the Gentiles, who by their
the Gentiles, and two concerning the Truth. Not long after,
Theophilus bishop of Antioch composed his three excellent
books for the conviction of Autolycus and Miltiades presented
:
of Conimodus.
XIV. And as they thus defend Christianity on the one hand
from the open assaults and calumnies of the Gentiles, so were
they no less careful on the other to clear it from the errors and
heresies wherewith men of perverse and evil minds sought to
corrupt and poison it. And the chief of those that engaged in
this way were these : Agrippa Castor, a man of great learning
in the time of Adrian, wrote an accurate Refutation of Basilides
and his Principles in twenty-four books. Theophilus of Antioch
against Hermogenes and Marcion ; Apollinaris, Philip bishop
mend them.
XV, A third advantage that helped on the progress of Chris-
tianity, was the indefatigable zeal and industry used in the pro-
pagation of it. No stone was left unturned, no method unat-
tempted, whereby they might reclaim men from error, and bring
them over acknowledgment of the truth. Hence in an
to the
ancient inscription^'' said to be set up in Spain, to the honour of
Nero, they are described under this character, qui novam generi
HUM. SUPERSTITION. iNcuLCAB. " Tliosc wlio iuculcatcd and ob-
truded a new superstition upon mankind." Indeed they were
infinitely zealous to gain proselytes to the best religion in the
world. They preached it boldly, and prayed heartily for the
conversion and reformation of mankind, solicited their neigh-
bours that were yet strangers to the faith, instructed and in-
formed new converts, and built them up on the most holy faith.
Those that were of greater parts and eminency erected and in-
where they publicly taught those that resorted
stituted schools,
to them, grounding them in the rudiments of the faith, and an-
tidoting them both against heathens on the one side, and here-
tics on the other. Among us, (says Tatian,") not only the rich
and the wealthy learn our philosophy, but the poor are freely
disciplined and instructed we admit all that are willing to
:
22 INTRODUCTION.
the remotest corners of the world. " The divine and adiniriible
disciples of the apostles (says ^Eusehius) Imilt np the superstruc-
tures of those churches, the foundations whereof the apostles had
laid in all places where they came : they every where promoted
the publication of the gospel, sowing the seeds of that heavenly
doctrine throughout the whole world. For their minds being
inflamed with the love of a more divine philosophy, according to
our Lord's counsel, they distributed their estates to the poor
and leaving their own countries, took upon them the ofl^ice of
evangelists; preaching Christ, and delivering the evangelical
writings to those who had not yet so much as heard of the
Christian faith. And no sooner had they founded the faith in
any foreign countries, and ordained guides and pastors, to whom
they committed the care of those new plantations, but they pre-
sently betook themselves to other nations, ratifying their doc-
trine with the miraculous powers of that Divine Spirit that at-
tended them : so that as soon as ever they began to preach, the
people universally flocked to them, and cheerfully and heartily
embraced the worship of the true God, the great Creator of the
world." In the number of these evangelical missionaries, that
were of the first apo.stolical succession, were Silas, Sylvanus,
Crescens, Andronicus, Trophimus, Marcus, Aristarchus, &c. as
afterwards Pant?enus who went into India, Pothinus and Ire-
nseus from Smyrna into France, each successively becoming
bishop of Lyons, and infinite others mentioned in the histories
and martyrologies of the church, who " counted not their lives
to be dear unto them, so that they might finish their course
with joy," and make known the mysteries of the gospel to the
ends of the earth.
XVI. Fourthly, Christianity recommended itself to the world
by the admirable lives of its professors, which were so truly con-
sonant to all the laws of virtue and goodness, as could not but
and more unprejudiced part of the Gentile
reconcile the M'iser
world to a better opinion of it, and vindicate it from those
absurd and senseless cavils that were made against it. For
when they saw Christians every where so seriously devout and
pious, so incomparably chaste and sober, of such humble and
mortified tempers, so strictly just and righteous, so kind and
charitable, not to themselves only, but to all mankind, they
» H. F,(xle». 1. iii. c. 37. p. 109.
INTRODUCTION. 23
heart, and an innocent life, was the sacrifice with which God
was well pleased, and infinitely beyond all holocausts and
oblations that a pious and devout mind was the fittest temple
;
for God to dwell in, and that to do one"'s duty, to abstain from
sin, to be intent upon the offices and ministrations of prayer and
praise, is the truest festival yea, that the whole life of a good ;
times its most violent opposers to fall down, and say, " that God
was in them of a truth." But the less of this argument is said
here, a full account having been given of it in a work peculiar
to this subject.
XVII. Fifthly, the disciples of this holy and excellent re-
ligion gained innumerable proselytes to their party by their
patience and constancy under sufferings. They were immutably
resolved to maintain their station, notwithstanding all the at-
temj)ts made
them from it. They entertained the
to beat
fiercest threatenings with an unshaken mind, and fearlessly
beheld the racks and engines prepared for them they laughed ;
36, 50, 53. 1. ii. p. 61, 85, 88, 110. 1. iii. p. 128, 147, 152, 157. 1. iv. p. Ifi7. 1. vi. p. 306.
1. vii. p. 364. 1. viii. p. 409, et alibi passim. Lactant 1. iii. c. 26, p. .S28. 1. iv. c. 3. p.
351.
* .1. Mort Orat. ad Grace, p. 40. Athenag. Legat. p. 13. Clem. Alex. Strom. 1. vii. p.
706, 709, 714, 719,728. Minuc. Fael. p. 26, 30. Amob. adv. Gent. 1. vii. p. 104.
Orig. contr. Cels. 1. viii. p. 38.i, 3Rf). 392. TiBctant. 1. i. c. 20. p. 108. 1. vi. r. 1. p. 540.
c. 21. p. ';.3«. Fpitom. c. 2. p. 736.
INTRODUCTION. 25
for the truth of it, refers them to their own public archives and
records a prince of that wild and ungovernable temper, of such
:
death of his father Claudius killed his two wives, Octavia and
;
Jill his villanies, fell next upon his own mother Agrippina, whom
f
Prim. Christ, part ii. ch. 7. ' Apol. c. 5. p. 6.
;
26 INTR<.)l)rCT10N.
lie hatod tor her free reproving lii.s looseness anil extravaganey;
and having iir.st spoiled her of all public honors, and caused her
to be openly disgraced and derided, then thrice attempted her
life by poison, he at last sent an assassin to stab her. And the
tradition then went, that not content to do this, he himself came
and beheld her naked corpse, contemplating and handling its
several parts commending some and dispraising others. And
;
INTRODUCTION. 27
and Titus, srave some rest to the Christians till Domitian sue- :
first he put on a plausible carriage, yet he soon left off the vizor,
''
Ap. Gruter. loc. supr. citat.
28 INTRODUCTION.
of all ranks and states: j)utting to death the most illustriousi
and the persons " frequenting them adjudged guilty of high trea-
son. Indeed the emperors (as we have elsewhere observed)
were infinitely suspicious of such meetings, as which might
easily conspire into faction and treason and therefore when :
ever the title or the occasion be, if they meet together, they will
be Jieteriw^ though less numerous than the rest. That they
looked upon the Christian assemblies as in the number of these
unlawful corporations and that under this pretence, Trajan
;
others many years since, and one five and twenty years ago.
All which paid their reverence and veneration to your statue,
and the images of the gods, and blasphemed Christ. They af-
firmed that the whole sum of that sect or error lay in this, that
they were wont upon a set solemn day to meet together before
sun-rise, and to sing among themselves a hymn to Christ, as the
God whom they worshipped and oblige themselves by an oath,
;
many of all ages and ranks, both men and women, are and will
be called in question ; the contagion of this superstition having
over-spread not only cities, but towns and country villages,
32 lNTK()i)i;('TION.
shall provide for all particular cases. Let them not be sought
for ; but if let them be punished
they be accused and convicted, :
that were an ill precedent, and is not the usage of our reign."
fact, where Christians were duly cited before the public tribunals,
VOL. I. D
34 INTRODUCTION.
from the glory of his predecessor, censuring and discommending
the most eminent artists in all kind of faculties. He familiarly
conversed with liis friends, visited them in their sickness many
times twice or thrice a day, treated them with the freedom and
kindness of companions ; and yet he was fierce and cruel as is :
any new laws which this emperor made against the Christians,
but the laws of his predecessors were still in force, and the people
which the emperor shewed in being initiated into the holy mys-
teries and the rites of Greece, gave opportunity and encourage-
ment to the people (though without any particular warrant) to
fall upon them : and this he elsewhere calls a " most grievous
"^
they had a mind to end their lives, they had precipices and
halters enough at home, and need not crowd thither for an exe-
cution. Nay, so high did it arise, that Serenius Granianus, one
of the following proconsuls, was forced to write to Adrian for
its mitigation which the emperor accordingly commanded hy
;
D 2
36 INTRODUCTION.
Epaq-atbus, a young man of incomparable piety and magnani-
mity ; IJbuulina, a lady of singular virtue, wbo, after iniinite and
inexpressible torments, was tied to a beam in fasbion of a cross, and
tbrown to wild beasts; Biblis, wbo tbougb at first tbrougb frailty
sbe denied tbe faitb, yet recovered ber courage, and expired in
the midst of tbe acutest tortures ; Potbinus, bisbop of Lyons,
above ninety years old, beaten and stoned to deatb ; Sanctus, a
deacon of Vienne, togetber witb INIaturus, exposed in tbe ampbi-
theatre, tormented and imprisoned several dajs togetber, pre-
sented to wild beasts, placed in an iron cbair red bot, and at
last run tbrougb witb a spear; Attalus, a Roman citizen, dis-
INTRODUCTION. ST
follow the Jewish superstition to obtain honours, and grantinjr
them guards to defend them from wrong and injury. By this,
very learned men*" understand Christians, at least equally with
the Jews ; these two being commonly confounded by the writers
of those times, and superstition the word by which they usually
denote Christianity. But however it was, this law was made
before that Gennan victory, M. Aurelius not being engaged in
that war till after the death of his brother Verus.
XXIV. The Christian affairs were tolerably quiet and peace-
Commodus, ^1. Pertinax, and Julian,
able during the reigns of
Severus got into the throne; a prince witty and learned,
till
prudent and politic, hardy and valiant, but withal crafty and
subtle, treacherous and unfaithful, bloody and passionate, and, as
the historian' observes, of a nature truly answering to his name,
Vere Pertinax, vere Severus. Under him began the sixth Per-
secution : for though at first he shewed himself favourable to the
Christians, yet afterwards he and gave ear to changed his mind,
those who traduced them and infamous generation
as an impious
a people that designed nothing but treason and rebellion against
the state. Whereupon he not only suffered his ministers and
governors of provinces to treat them with all imaginable cruelty,
but he himself gave out edicts, forbidding any, under the most
terrible penalties, to profess either the Jewish or Christian reli-
gion which were executed with that rigour and inhumanity,
;
that the Christians of those days verily believed that the times
of Antichrist did then take place. Martyrs of note whom this
persecution sent to heaven, were Victor bishop of Rome Leo- ;
^
first a shepherd, then a highwayman, and last of all a soldier:
was the law of justice, and his will the measure of his actions. He
spared none, but especially killed all that knew any thing of his
mean descent, that none might reproach him Avith the obscurity of
his birth. Having slain his master Alexander Mammrcus, that
excellent and incomparable prince, he usurped the government,
and managed it suitably to his own maxim, that "the empire could
not be maintained but by cruelty." The seventh Persecution was
raised by him. Indeed Sulj)itius Severus admits not this into
the number, and therefore makes no more than nine Pagan Per-
secutions, reserving the tenth for the times of Antichrist. But
Eusebius " expressly affirms, that Maximinus stirred up a perse-
cution against the Christians, and that out of hatred to his
predecessor, in whose family many Christians had found shelter
and patronage, but that it was almost wholly levelled against
the bishops and ministers of religion, as the prime authors and
propagators of Christianity. Whence Firmilian, bishop of Cap-
padocia, in his letter to St. Cyprian," says of it, that it was not
a general, but a local persecution, and raged in some particular
places, and especially in that province where he lived, Serenianus
the president driving the Christians out of all those countries.
He adds, that many dreadful earthquakes happening in those
parts, whereby towns and cities were overturned and swallowed
up, added life and vigour to the persecution, it being usual with
the Gentiles, if a famine or pestilence, an earthquake or inunda-
•>
Herod, lib. vii. in Maxim, p. 253. ' CapitoL in vit. Maxim, c. 0.
their churches were persecuted and burnt to the ground: and that
not only the common people, but the wiser sort among them did
not stick openly to affirm, that these things came for the sake of
the Christians. Hereupon he wrote his book " De Martyrio,"
for the comfort and support of those that suffered in this evil
time.
XXVI. After Maximinus reigned Pupienus and Balbinus, to
them succeeded Gordian, and to him Philip all which time, for :
c. 27.
40 INTKUDUCTION.
l)iiicers, were but suiue of the methods of their treatment; and
when the okl ones were run over, new were daily invented and
contrived. The hiws of nature and humanity were broken down,
friend betrayed his friend, and the nearest reUitive his own
father or brother. Every one was ambitious to promote the
imperial edicts, and thought it meritorious to bring a Christian
to the stake. This persecution swept away at Alexandria,
Julian, Chronion, Epimachus, Alexander, Amnion, Zeno, Pto-
lemy, Ammonaria, Mercuria, Isidore, and many others men-
tioned by Dionysius bishop of that church ; at Carthage,
Mappalicus, IJassus, Fortunio, Paulus, Donatus, Martialis, &c. ;
both men and women, young and old, soldiers and country
people, persons of all ranks and ages, were some of them
scourged and whipped, others beheaded, others overcoming the
crown of martyrdom. Cyprian
violence of flames, received the
elegantly and passionately bewails the miseries and sufferings
which the martyrs underwent, in his letter to Nemesian, and
being as the last, so the fiercest persecution, like the last efi^brts
INTRODUCTION. 43
pieces of broken pots; were cast to lions and tigers, to wild boars
and bears, provoked and enraged with fire to set upon them
burnt, beheaded, crucified, thrown into the sea ; torn in pieces by
the distorted boughs of trees, or their legs miserably distended
in the stocks; roasted at a gentle fire, or b}' holes made on
purpose had melted lead poured into their bowels. But im-
possible it is much more to express the cruelties of
to conceive,
that time. Eusebius himself, who saw them, tells us,^ that they
were innimierable, and exceeded all relation. All which, he
assures us, they endured with the most admirable and undaunted
patience ; they thronged to the tribunals of their judges, and
freely them what they were despised the threatenings
told ;
of the work, laid down their purple, and retired to tlie solitudes
of a private life. And tliough Galerius, Maximianus, Jovius
Maximinus, Maxentius, and Licinius did Avhat they could to set
the persecution on foot again, yet all in vain both they and it in ;
INTRODUCTION. 45
'
Justum ac tenacem propositi vinim,
Non civium ardor prava jubentium,
Non vultus instantis tyranni
Mcnte quatit solida.'
nor the swords of the governors, that they may with a constant
mind preserve real and solid liberty, wherein true wisdom alone
is to be maintained." Thus far that elegant apologist. And
certainly the truth of his reasonings was abundantly verified by
the experience of the world ; Christians getting ground, and
conquering opposition by nothing more than their patience and
their constancy, till they had subdued the empire itself to the
The violent opposition that Christianity at its first appearance met with both from Jews
and Gentiles. St. Stephen's kindred unknown. One of the Seventy. The great
charity of the primitive believers. Dissension between the Hebrews and Grecians.
Hellenists, who. The original of deacons in the Christian church. The nature of
their office : the number and qualification of the persons. Stephen's eminent accom-
plishments for the place. The envy and opposition of the Jews against him. The
synagogue of the Libertines, what. Of the Cyrenians, Alexandrians, &c. Their
disputation with St. Stephen, and the success of it. False witnesses suborned to de-
pose against him. The several parts of their charge considered. The mighty venera-
tion of the Jews for their temple and the Mosaic institutions. Its destruction by
Titus ; and their attempts to rebuild it under Julian frustrated by a miracle. Stephen's
apology before the Sanhedrin. The Jews rage against him. He is encouraged by a
vision. Stoning to death, what kind of punishment among the Jews.
; the manner of it
of his suffering. The place and manner of his burial. His body first discovered, when
and how. The story of its translation to Constantinople. The miracles said to be
done by his relics, and at his memorice. Several reported by St. Augustine. What
credit to be given to them. Miracles, how long and why continued in the church.
The vain pretences of the church of Rome.
nor could they endure that their philosophy, which then every
Avhere ruled the chair, should be controlled by a plain simple
48 THE LIFE OF
doctrine, th:it prcteiuled to no elaborate schemes, no insinuative
strains of t'loquence,no nice and subtle arts of reasoning, no
abstruse and sublime speculations. The Jews were vexed to
see their expectations of a mighty prince, who should greatly
exalt their state, and redeem it from that oppression and slavery
under which it groaned, frustrated by the coming of a Messiah,
who appeared under all the circumstances of meanness and dis-
grace and who was
; so far from rescuing them from the power
of the Roman yoke, that for their obstinacy and unbelief he
threatened the final and irrevocable ruin of their countrv; and
by the doctrine he published plainly told them he intended
to abolish those ancient Mosaic institutions, for which they had
such dear regards, and so solemn a veneration. Accordingly,
when he came amongst them, they entertained him with all the
instances of cruelty and contempt, and whatever might expose
him to the scorn and odium of the people they vilified and re-;
would not do, they violently laid hands upon him, and took
away his life. And now one would have thought their spite
and fury should have cooled and died but malice and revenge:
are too fierce and hot to stop at the first attempt. On they re-
solve to go in these bloody methods and to let the world see
;
that the disciples and followers must expect no better than their
Master, it was not many months before they took occasion to
refresh their rage in St. Stephen's martyrdom the history of :
whose life and death we now come to relate, and to make some
brief remarks upon it.
II. The sacred story gives us no particular account either of
the country or kindred of this holy man. That he was a Jew-
is untjuestionable, himself sufficiently owns the relation in his
apology to the people, but whether originally descended of the
stock of Abraham, or of parents incorporated and brought in by
the gate of proselytism, whether born at Jerusalem, or among
the dispersed in the Gentile provinces, is impossible to determine.
Baronius"" (grounding his conjecture upon an epistle of Lucian,
» Ad Ann. XXXIV. n. 27.i, 2f»8.
SAINT STEPHEN. 49
VOL. I. K
50 THE LIFE OF
partiality, or tlio oversight of those that managed the matter,
some had hirger portions, others less relief tlian their just neces-
This begat some present heats and animosities
sities called for.
a mixed language, yea rather that EX\r]viaTy]<i implies one that '
•
Acts vi. 1. '1
.Iclin vii. 3.").
the same common original, with the Jews the same common
profession and therefore are not here opposed to Jews, (which
;
all those might be styled who embrace Judaism and the rites
K 2
52 THE LIFE OF
to .superintend this afFair, that so themselves, beinir freed from
these ineunihrances, might the more freely and iniiiiterruptedly
devote themselves to prayer and preaching of the gospel. Not
that the apostles thought the care of the poor an office too much
below them, but that this might be discharged by other hands,
and they, as they were obliged, the better attend upon things of
higher importance, ministeries more immediately serviceable to
the souls of men. This was the first original of deacons in the
Christian church they were to " serve tables," that is, to wait
:
' Liicinn Clironosol. seu dc Lcgg. Satumiil. vol. ii. p. filf?. cd. 1687.
' Ign.it. Kpist. nd Trail. Ap])end. Usser. p. 17. •! Apol. i. c. 6.5.
SAINT STEPHEN. 53
we look far beyond the present story to find St. Philip, one of
the deacons here elected, both preaching the gospel and baptizing
converts with great success.
VI. That this excellentoffice might be duly managed, the
'
Suid. in voc. Ai^epT^uos. " Antiq. Jud. lib. xvii. c. 12.
lowed St. Stephen's death, " were scattered abroad from Je-
rusalem, and preached as far as Phoenice, Cyprus, and Antioch.'"'^
The third were those of the synagogue of the Alexandrians,
Jews at Jerusalem
there being a mighty intercourse between the
and Alexandria, where what vast multitudes of them dwelt, and
''
Annal. lib. ii. c. J^5. ' Stieton. in vit. Tib. c. .36. » Antiq. 1. xviii. c. h.
••
Apiul .lospph. Antiq. Jiul. 1. xvi. c. 10. '
Acts ii. 10. <^
Matt, xxvii. 32.
f
' Arts xiii. 1. Acts xi. 10. 20.
SAINT STEPHEN. 57
shall the Lord your God raise up unto you of your brethren,
like unto me, him shall ye hearf' Have not the prophets long
since foretold that he should be born at Bethlehem, and con-
ceived in the womb of a virgin? that he should fly into Egypt?
?"
that he should 'bear our griefs and carry our sorroAvs ' that
they should 'pierce his hands and his and hang him on a feet,"'
as God our crucified Saviour. Blind and ignorant that you are
of the predictions of Moses, you thought you crucified a mere
man but had you known him, you would not have crucified the
;
Lord of Glory you denied the Holy One, and the Just, and
:
Jesus of Nazareth shall destroy this place, and shall change the
customs which Moses delivered usf f that is," (that we may still
proceed with that excellentman in opening the several parts of
the charge) " he has dared to speak against our wise and great
lawgiver, and hlasphemed that Moses, for whom our whole
nation has so just a veneration ; that Moses who had the whole
creation at his heck, who freed our ancestors from the house of
bondage, and with his rod turned the waters into walls, and by
his prayer drowned the Egyptian army in the bottom of the sea;
who kindled a fiery pillar for a light by night, and without
ploughing or sowing fed them with manna and bread from heaven,
and with his rod pierced the rock and gave them drink. But
what do we speak of Moses, when he has whetted his tongue,
and stretched it out against God himself, and set up one that is
dead as an anti-god to the great Creator of the world i He has
not blushed to reproach the temple, that holy place, where the
divine oracles are read, and the writings of the prophets set
forth, the repository of theshew-bread and the heavenly manna,
of the ark of the covenant, and the rod of Aaron where the ;
which he has reviled and set at naught and not this only, but ;
Jesus of Nazareth must destroy it, and 'change the customs which
few years after came to pass by the Roman army under the
conduct of Titus Vespasian the Roman general, when the city
was sacked, and the temple burnt to the ground. And so final
and irrevocable was the sentence bj which it was doomed to
ruin, that it could never afterwards be repaired, heaven itself
immediately declaring against it. Insomuch that when Julian
the emperor, out of spite and opposition to the Christians, was
resolved to give all possible encouragement to the Jews, and
not only permitted but commanded them to rebuild the temple,
furnishingthem with all charges and materials necessary for the
work, (hoping that hereby he should prove our Saviour a false
prophet,) no sooner had they begun to clear the rubbish, and lay
the foundation, but a terrible earthquake shattered the foundation,
killed the undertakers, and shaked down all the buildings that
were round about it. And when they again attempted it the
next day, great balls of fire suddenly breaking out from under the
62 THE LIFE OK
foundations consumed the workmen and those that wore near it,
none of them, why then did they imbrue their hands in his in-
nocent blood ?
XVII. "The court being thus set, and the charge brought in
and opened, that nothing might be wanting to carry on their
mock scene of justice, they gave him liberty to defend himself.
In order whereunto, while the judges of the Sanhedrim earnestly
looked upon him, they discovered the appearances of an extra-
ordinary splendour and brightness upon his face, the innoccncy
of his cause and the clearness of his conscience manifesting
themselves in the brightness and cheerfulness of his countenance.
The high-priest having asked him whether guilty or not, he in a
large discourse pleaded his own cause to this effect That what :
them; that there were few of the ])ropliets whom their fore-
fathers had not persecuted, and slain them that had foretold the
Messiairs coming, the 'just and the holy Jesus,"" as they their
nnhappy posterity had actually betrayed and murdered him,
without an}^ due reverence and regard to that law, which had
been solemnly delivered to them by the ministry of angels, and
which he came to fulfil and perfect.
XVIII. " The holy man was going on in the ajiplication, when
the patience of liis auditors, which had hitherto holden out, at
this began to fail that fire which gently warms at a distance,
;
are then nearest to us, when human assistances are farthest from
us. The good man was infinitely ravished with the vision, and
it inspired his soul with a fresh zeal and courage, and made him
SAINT STEPHEN. G5
within the walls, lest they should pollute the holy city with his
blood, but hurried him " without the city," and there fell upon
him with a shower of stones. Stoning was one of the four capital
punishments among the Jews, inflicted upon greater and more
enormous crimes, especially blasphemy, idolatry, and strange
worship : and the Jews tell us of many particular circumstances
used in this sort of punishment.* The malefactor was to be led
out of the consistory, at the door whereof a person was to stand
with a napkin in his hand, and a man on horseback at some
distance from him, that if any one came and said, he had some-
thing to offer for the deliverance of the malefactor, upon the
moving of the napkin the horseman might give notice, and bring
the offender back. He had two grave persons to go along with
him to exhort him to confession by the way a crier went before ;
him, proclaiming who he was, what his crime, and who the wit-
nesses being come near the place of execution (which was two
;
cubits from the ground) he was first stripped, and then stoned, and
afterwards hanged, where he was to continue till sunset, and then
being taken down, he and his gibbet were both buried together.
XX. Such were their customs in ordinary cases, but, alas
their greediness of St. Stephen's blood would not admit these
tedious proceedings only one formality we find them using,
;
which the law required, which was, that " the hands of the wit-
nesses should be first upon him, to put him to death, and after-
ward the hands of all the people :" " a law surely contrived with
great wisdom and prudence, that so the witness, if forsworn,
might derive the guilt of the blood upon himself, and the rest be
free; " so thou shalt put the evil away from among you." Ac-
' Vid. P. Fag. in Exod. xxi. 10. " Dout. xvii. 7.
VOL. I. F
66 THE LIFE OF
corclinii|-ly here the witnesses puttinii^ off tlioir upper ofannents,
(which reiulereil them less nimble and expedite, l)eiiitr loose and
long", according to the mode of those Eastern conntries,) laid
them down at Sanl's feet, a zealous youth, at that time student
under Gamaliel, the fiery zeal and activity of whose temper made
him busy, no doubt, in this, as we find he was in the following
persecution ; an action which afterwards cost him tears and
penitent reflections, himself preferring the indictment against
himself: " When the blood of thy martyr Stephen was shed, I
also was standing by, and consenting unto his death, and kept
the raiment of them that slew him."'''* Thus prepared they began
the tragedy, whose example was soon followed by the multitude.
All which time the innocent and holy man was upon his knees,
sending up his prayers faster to heaven than they could rain
down stones upon him, piously recommending his own soul to
God, and charitably interceding for his murderers, that God
would not charge this guilt upon them, nor severely reckon with
them for it and then gave up the ghost, or, as the sacred
;
" Acts xxii. 20. " Ps. xxxvii. 37. > Hist. Ectl. 1. ii. c. 1.
SAINT STEPHEN. 67
the torments and sufterings that he underwent, he discovered
nothing but the meek and innocent temper of a lamb, never be-
traying one passionate and revengeful word, but calmly resigned
up his soul to God. He had a charity large enough to cover the
highest affronts, and the greatest wrongs and injuries that were
put upon him and accordingly, after the example of his Master,
;
he prayed for the pardon of his murderers, even while they were
raking in his blood. And " the effectual fervent prayer of the
righteous man availed much;"^ heaven was not deaf to his peti-
tion, as appeared in the speedy conversion of St. Paul,'' whose
admirable change we may reasonably suppose to have been the
birth of the good man's dying groans, the fruit of his prayer and
interest in heaven. And what set off all these excellencies, he
was not elated with lofty and arrogant conceits, nor " thought
more highly of himself than he ought to think," ^ esteeming
meanly of, and preferring others before himself. And therefore
the author of the " Apostolic Constitutions"'^ brings in the apo-
stles commending St. Stephen
for his humility, that though he
was so great a person, and honoured with such singular and ex-
traordinary visions and revelations, yet never attempted any
thing above his place, did not consecrate the eucharist, nor con-
fer orders upon any but (as became a martyr of Christ rrjv
;
f2
'
68 THE LIFE OF
for what reason, I confess I am yet to learn, lie was martyred
without the walls, near the gate on the north side that leads to
Cedar, (as Lucian tells us,'') and which was afterwards called
;
St. Stephen''s Gate ' anciently (say some) styled the Gate of
;
Ephraim ^ or, as others, the Valley Gate, or the Fish Gate
;
which stood on the cast side of the city, where the place, we are
told, is still shewed, where St. Paul sat when he kept the clothes
of them that slew him. Over this place (wherever it was) the
empress Eudocia,"' wife of Theodosius, when she repaired the
walls of Jerusalem, erected a beautiful and stately church to the
honour of St. Stephen, wherein she herself was buried afterwards.
The great stone upon which he stood while he suffered martyr-
dom, is removed into the church
said to have been afterwards
built to thehonour of the apostles upon Mount Sion,° and there
kept with great care and reverence yea, one of the stones :
t Lucian. Ep. dc invent. S. Steph. in ap. Aug. opp. vol. vii. et apud Bar. ad ann. 415.
vid. Nicejth. 1. xiv. c. 9.
SAINT STEPHEN. 69
it lay for some time night and day, untouched either by beast or
bird of prey. Till Gamaliel, compassionating the case of the
holy martyr, persuaded some religious Christian proselytes, who
dwelt at Jerusalem, and furnished them with all things necessary
for it, to go with and fetch off his body.
all possible secrecy
They brought it away
and conveyed it to a
in his own carriage,
place called Caphargamala, (corruptly, as is probable, for Caphar-
gamaliel, otherwise i^bt2^ ")H)D, properly signifies the Toivn of
Camels), that is, the village of Gamaliel, twenty miles distant
from Jerusalem ; where a solemn mourning was kej)t for him
seventy days at GamalieFs charge, who also caused him to be
buried in the east side of his own monument, where afterwards
he was interred himself The Greek Menjeon'' adds, that his
body was put into a coffin made of the wood of the tree called
persea, (this was a large beautiful Egyptian tree, as Theophrastus
tells us,^ of which they were wont to make statues, beds, tables,
at the same time with the bones of the prophet Zachary, an ac-
count of both which he promises to give and having spoken of ;
that of the prophet, there abruptly ends his history. But what
is wanting in him is fully supplied by other hands, especially the
•
Menason Graeeor. rp kctt' tov AeKe/xfip. sub. lit. 2. 111.
' Histor. Plant. 1. iv. c. 2.
' "'E.KcppacT. tS>v ay. T6iro>v, &c. c. xiv. p. 19. edit. Allat.
" Ibid. c. XV. p. 2.5. ^ Hist. Eccl. 1. ix. c. 16, 17.
y Lucian. Ep. de invent. S. Steph. in ap. Aug. opp. vol. vii. et Phot. Cod. CLXXI.
70 THE LIFE OF
in the diocese of Jerusalem, who is very large and punctual in
his account, the sum whereof (so far as concerns the present case,
and is material to relate) is this. Sleeping one night in the
laptisterium of his church, (this was anno 415. Honor. Imper.
21.) there appeared to him a grave venerable old man, who
told him he was Gamaliel, bade him go to John bishop of Jeru-
salem, and will him to remove his remains and some others
(whereof St. Stephen was the principal) that were with him
from the place where they lay. Three several times the vision
appeared to him before he would be fully satisfied in the thing,
and then he acquainted the bishop with it, who commanded him
to search after the place. After some attempts, he found the
place of their repository, and then gave the bishop notice, who
came and brought two other bishops, Eleutherius of Sebaste and
Eleutherius of Hiericho, along with him. The monument being
opened, they found an inscription upon St. Stcphen''s tomb-stone
in deep letters, " CELIEL," signifying (says mine author) the
" Servant of God ;" at the opening of the coffin there was an
earthquake, and a very pleasant and delightful fragrancy came
from it, and several miraculous cures were done by it. The re-
mains being closed up again, (only some few bones, and a little
of the dust that was taken out, and bestowed upon Lucian,)
were with great triumph and rejoicing conveyed to the church
that stood upon Mount where he himself while
Sion, the place
alive had discharged the I add no more of this,
office of a deacon.
but that this story is not only mentioned by Photius,^ and before
him by Marcellinus Comes," sometime chancellor or secretary to
Justinian, afterwards emperor, (who sets it down as done in the
very same year, and under the same consuls wherein Lucian's
Epistle reports it) but before, both by Gennadius,*" presbyter of
;
Marseilles, who lived anno 490, and many years before, and con-
sequently not long after the time of Lucian himself; who also
adds, that Lucian wrote a relation of it in Greek to all the
churches, which Avitus, a Spanish presbyter, translated into
Latin, whose epistle is prefixed to it, wherein he gives an ac-
count of it to Balchonius bishop of Braga, and sent it by Orosius
into Spain.
XXV. These remains (whether before or after, the reader
mistake St. Stephen's coffin for that of her husband, and so set
forward on her journey. But it soon betrayed itself by an extra-
ordinary odour, and some miraculous effects the fame whereof :
church built there. But certainly they that first added this
passage to the story had been at a great loss for invention, had
not the story of Balaam's ass been upon record in Scripture. I
tion, not for the trifling and ridiculous improbabilities of it, but
only because he could not well reconcile it with the time of its
find not.
XXVn. As have been done by
for the miracles reported to
of August, (the day whereon St. Stephen s body was first dis-
covered,) to melt and bubble, as if it were but newly shed. But
the miracle of the miracle lay in this, that when pope Gregory
«=
Marcell. Cliron. Indict, vii. p. 24. Thcodor. Lcct. 1. ii. ' Ad 7 Maii, p. 203.
K Vid. A\-it. Ep. Pracf. E]t. Lucian. Gennad. dc script. EccL in Oros. cxxxix. Marcell.
Chron. p. 17.
••
Dc glor. Martyr. 1. i. c. 33. '
Annot. in Martyr. Rom. ad Aug. III. p. 340.
SAINT STEPHEN. 73
the Xlllth reformed the Roman calendar, and made no less than
ten days difference from the former, the blood in the vial ceased
to bubble upon the third of August, according to the old compu-
tation, and bubbled upon that that fell according to the new
reformation. A great justification, I confess, (as Baronius well
observes,) of the divine authority of the Gregorian calendar
and the pope's constitutions : but yet it was ill done to set the
calendars at variance, when both had been equally justified by
the miracle. But how easy it was to abuse the world with such
tricks, especially in these later ages, wherein the artifice of the
priests was arrived to a kind of perfection in these affairs, is no
difficult matter to imagine.
XXVIII. Let us then look to the more early ages, Avhen
covetousness and secular interests had not so generally put men
upon arts of craft and subtlety and we are told both by Lucian
;
slept well, and in the morning called for the bishop, in whose
absence (for he was at that time with St. Augustine at Hippo)
the presbyters were sent for whose coming he acknowledged
; at
himself a Christian, and, to the joy and admiration of all, was
tyrdora of St. Stephen, every day praying that God would for-
give them, and restore them to their health. Upon Easter-day,
the young man praying
was wont at the accustomed place,
as he
suddenly dropped down, and lay like one asleep, but without
any trembling, and awaking found himself perfectly restored to
health, who was thereupon with the joyful acclamations of the
people brought to St. Augustine, who kindly received him, and
after the public devotionswere over, treated him at dinner,
where he had the whole account of the misery that befell him.
The day after, when the narrative of his cure was to be recited
to the people, his sister also was healed in the same manner and
at the same place, the particular circumstances of both which
St. Augustine relates more at large.
XXX. What the judicious and unprejudiced reader will
think of these and more the like instances there reported by
this good father, I know not, or whether he will not think it
reasonable to believe,"' that God might suffer these strange and
miraculous cures to be wrought in a place where multitudes yet
persisted in their gentilism and infidelity, and who made this
one great objection against the Christian whatever
faith, that
miracles might be heretofore pretended for the confirmation of
Christian religion, yet that now they were ceased, when yet they
were still necessary to induce the world to the belief of Chris-
tianity. Certain it is, that nothing was done herein, but what
did very well consist with the wisdom and the goodness of God,
who, as he is never wont to be prodigal in multiplying the
effects of his omnipotent power beyond a just necessity, so is
human and regular ways, and to preserve its authority over the
•" Vid. Aug. loc. supra citato.
76 THE LIFE OF SAINT STEPHEN.
minds of men, by those standing and innate characters of di-
vinity whicli he has impressed upon it. It is true that the
church of Rome still pretends to this power, which it endeavours
to justify by appealing to these and such like instances. But in
vain, and to no purpose ; the pretended miracles of that church
being generally trifling and ridiculous, far beneath that gravity
and work upon a wise and considering
seriousness that should
mind, the manner of their operation obscure and ambiguous,
their numbers excessive and immoderate, the occasions of them
light and frivolous, and, after all, the things themselves for the
most part false, and the reports very often so monstrous and
extravagant, as would choke any sober and rational belief, so
that a man must himself become the greatest miracle that be-
lieves them, I shall observe no more, than that in all these
His birth-place. The confounding him with St. Philip the Apostle. His election to the
oiRce of a deacon. The dispersion of the church at Jerusalem. Philip's preaching at
Samaria. Inveterate prejudices between the Samaritans and the Jews. The great
success of St. Philip's ministry. The impostures of Simon Magus, and his embracing
Christianity. The Christians at Samaria confirmed by Peter and John. Philip sent
to Gaza. His meeting with the Ethiopian eunuch. What Ethiopia here meant.
Candace, who. The custom of retaining eunuchs in the courts of the eastern princes.
This eunuch, who. His office. His religion, and great piety. His conversion and
baptism by St. Philip. The place where he was baptized. The eunuch's return, and
propagating Christianity in his own country. Philip's journey to Csesarea, and fixing
his abode there. His four daughters virgin-prophetesses. His death.
warrant for it than his own conjecture, I know not, there being
some circumstances however that make it probable. He has
been by some both formerly and of later times, for want of a due
regard to things and persons, carelessly confounded with St.
Philip the apostle a mistake of very ancient date, and which
:
down the country, while the other remained with the apostolical
college at Jerusalem that the one, though commissionated to
;
preach and to baptize, could not impart the Holy Ghost, (the
peculiar prerogative of the apostolical office,) will see just reason
to force him to acknowledge a vast difference between them.
a Epist. 1. i. ep. 449.
78 THE LIFE OF
Our St. Philip was one of the seventy disciples, and St. Stephen's
next colleague in the deacon's office, erected for the conveniency
of the poor, and assisting the apostles in some inferior services
and ministrations which shews him to have been a person of
:
and fury of his enemies but the bloody cloud did not so blow
:
seized whoever he met with, that looked but like a disciple of the
crucified Jesus, and without any regard to sex or age, beat, and
haled them unto prison, plucking the husband from the bosom
of his wife, and the mother from the embraces of her children,
blaspheming God, prosecuting and being injurious unto men,
breathing out nothing but slaughter and threatenings wherever
he came whence Eusebius calls it the first and most grievous
:
"'
nor to enter into any city of the Samaritans."^ But when Christ
^ Acts viii. S.
e John iv. 9.
f
Matt x. 5.
80 THE LIFE OF
by his deatlihad " broken down the partition wall, and abolished
in his flesh the enmity, even the law of commandments contained
well to them that were afar ofl', as to them that were nigh.''"'
Philip therefore fi-eely preached the gospel to these Samaritans,
so odious, so distasteful to the Jews : to which he effectually
prepared his way by many great and uncontrollable miracles,
which being arguments fitted to the capacities, and accommodate
to the senses of the meanest, do easiliest convey the truth into
the minds of men. And the success here was accordingly, the
people generally embracing the Christian doctrine, while tliey
beheld him curing all manner of diseases, and powerfully dis-
possessing demons, who with great horror and regret were forced
to quit their residence, to the equal joy and wonder of that
place.
IV. In this city was one Simon, born at a town not far ofi\,
out himself to be the Father, (as Irenseus assures us,"") rov irpw-
Tov ©eov, as his countryman Justin Martyr tells us,' the people
worshipped him, as the first and chiefest deity; as afterwards
among the Gentiles he styled himself the Holy Ghost. And
what wonder if by this train of artifices the people were tempted
and seduced to admire and adore him. And in this case things
stood at St. Philip's arrival, whose greater and more unquestion-
able miracles quickly turned the scale. Imposture cannot bear
the too near approach of truth, but flies before it, as darkness
vanishes at the presence of the sun. The people, sensible of
their error, universally flocked to St. Philip's sermons, and con-
vinced by the efficacy of his doctrine, and the power of his
miracles, gave up themselves his converts, and were by baptism
initiated into the Christian faith : yea, the magician himself,
K Eph. h
ii. 14, 15, &c. Adv. ILxres. 1. i. c. 23. (al. 20.)
'
Apol. i. e. 2f). vide Tertull. do Prascr. Iln-rot. c. 4f;.
SAINT PHILIP. 81
which Eusebius'' tells us, his disciples and followers still observed
in his time, who in imitation of their father, like a pest or a
leprosy, were wont to creep in among the Christian societies,
that so they might with the more advantage poison and infect
the rest, many of whom having been discovered, had with shame
been ejected and cast out of the church.
V. The fame of St. Philip''s success at Samaria quickly flew to
Jerusalem, where the apostles immediately took care to dispatch
some of their own number to confirm these new converts in the
faith. Peter and John were sent upon this errand, who being
come, prayed for them, and laid their hands upon them, ordain-
ing probably some to be governors of the church, and ministers
of religion which was no sooner done, but the miraculous gifts
;
of the Holy Ghost fell upon them a plain evidence of the apo-
;
stolic power. Philip had converted and baptized them, but being
G
;
82 THE LIFE OF
salem, or (as Chrysostom" thinks) stayed at Samaria, and the
partis thereabouts, we have no intimations left upon record,
IJut
n Acts viii. 26. ' Geograph. 1. xvi. p. 1102. (al. 750.) ' Zeph. ii. 4.
•
Jer. xh-ii. 5. " Acts viii. 27. " Heb. xi. 8.
SAINT PHILIP. 83
y Acts viii. 27. ^ Dorott. Synops. vol. ii. bibl. patrum. p. 1 86.
* Sophr. ap. Hier. de Scriptt. Eccl. in Crescent.
^ Hier. ad Paulinum, Ep. L. vol. iv. part ii. p. 570. <^ Amos ix. 7. ^ Tit. ii. 11.
« f e Hist. Nat.
Acts X. 35. Antiq. Jud. 1. iL c. .5. 1. vi. c. 29.
G 2
84. THE LIFE OF
in Strabo) first commenoing in the time of Angustus, vvlien a
queen of that name having for lier incomparable virtues been
dear to the people, her successors, in honour of her, took the title
of Candace, in the same sense that Ptolemy was the common
name of the kings of Egypt, Artaxerxes of the kings of Persia,
and C?esar of the Roman emperors. Indeed Oecumenius'' was
of opinion that Candace was only the common name of the
queen-mothers of Ethiopia, that nation not giving the name of
fathers to their kings, as acknowledging the sun only for their
common father, and their princes the sons of that common
parent. But in this I think he stands alone, and contradicts
the general vote and suffrage of the ancients, which affirms this
nation to have been subject to women ; sure I am Eusebius' ex-
pressly says, it was the custom of this country to be governed
by queens even in his time. The name of the present queen
(they say) was Lacasa, daughter of king Baazena, and that she
outlived the death of our Saviour four years.
IX. Among the great officers of her court she had one (if not
more) eunuch, probably to avoid suspicion, it being the fashion
of those Eastern countries (as it still is at this day) to employ
eunuchs in places of great trust and honour, and especially of
near access to, and attendance upon queens. For however
among us the very name sounds vile and contemptible, yet in
those countries it is otherwise : among the Barbarians, (says
Herodotus,'') that is, the Eastern people, eunuchs are persons of
the greatest esteem and value.' Our eunuch's name (as we find
it in the Confession made by Zaga Zabo,'" ambassador from the
Ethiopian emperor) was Indich ; Bvvdarrjf;, a potent courtier, an
officer of state of prime note and quality, being no less than high-
treasurer to the queen ; nor do we find that Philip, either at his
conversion or ba])tism, found fault with him for his place or
greatness. Certainly magistracy is no w^ays inconsistent with
Christianity ; may well agree, and
the church and the state
Moses and Aaron go hand in hand. Peter baptized Cornelius,
and St. Paul Sergius the proconsul of Cyprus into the Christian
faith, and yet neither of them found any more fault with them
for their places of authority and power than Philip did here
with the lord treasurer of the Ethiopian queen. For his re-
''
Opcumcn. Coram, in Act. viii. c. xii. p. 82. ' H. Eccl. 1. ii. c. 1 .
^ 1 lornd. 1. viii. c. 1 OH.
' Tacit. Ann. 1. \i. c. 31. " Extat ml Bzov. Annul. Eccl. ad Ann. 1524. n. xxxii.
SAINT PHILIP. 85
valley, about half a league, runs a brook not far from Sicelech,
in which this eunuch Avas baptized. But Eusebius' and St.
Hierom" (followed herein by Ado" the martyrologist) more
probably place it near Bethsoron, (where we are told^ it is still
her name (they tell us) was Maqueda, who having learnt from
Solomon the knowledge of the Jewish law, and received the
books of their religion, taught them her subjects, and sent her
son Meilech to Solomon to be instructed and educated by him ;
many years after we find St. Paul and his company, coming from
Ptolemais in their journey to Jerusalem, " entering into the
house of Philip the evangelist, which was one of the seven, and
abiding with him and the same man had four daughters, virgins,
;
upon any difficult and emergent occasion, yet can we not suppose
these virgins to have had this part of the prophetic faculty, or
at least that they did not publicly exercise it in the congrega-
tion. This therefore unquestionably respected things to come,
and was an instance of God's accomplishing an ancient promise,
that in the times of the Messiah he would " pour out of his
Spirit upon all flesh, on their sons and daughters, servants and
handmaidens, and they should prophesy."'""' The names of two
of these daughters, the Greek Menseon tells us, were Hermione
and Eutychis, who came into Asia after St. John"'s death, and
the first of them died, and was buried at Ephesus.
XIV. How long St. Philip lived after his return to Csesarea,
and whether he made any more excursions for the propagation
of the faith, is not certainly known. Dorotheus,' I know not
upon what ground, will have him to have been bishop of Tra-
zellis, a city in Asia others,'' confounding him with St. Philip
:
•"
Acts iL 17, 18. '
Synops. de Vit. App. vol. ii. bibl. patrum. p. 182.
''
Polycrat. ap. Euseb. 1. iii. c. 31. Procul. ibid.
' Martyr. Rom. ad VI. Jun. Martyr. Adon. VIII. Id. Jun.
» Hier. Epitaph. Paul, ad Eustoch. vol. iv. p. 673.
THE LIFE OF SAINT BARNABAS
THE APOSTLE.
His surname Joses. The title of Barnabas whence added to him. His country and
parents. His education, and conversion to Christianity. His generous charity. St,
Paul's address to him after his conversion. His commission to confirm the church of
Antioch. His taking St. Paul in to his assistjince. Their being sent with contribu-
tions to the church at .lerusalem. Their peculiar separation for the ministry of the
Gentiles. Imposition of hands the usual rite of ordination. Their travels through
several countries. Their success in Cyprus. Barn:ibas at Lystra taken for Jupiter,
and why. Their return to Antioch. Their embassy to Jerusalem about the con-
troversy concerning the legal rites. Barnabas seduced by Peter's dissimulation at
Antioch. The dissension between him and St. Paul. Barnabas's journey to Cyprus.
His voyage to Rome, and preaching the Christian faith there. His martyrdom by the
Jews in Cj-prus. His burial. His body, when first discovered. St. Matthew's Hebrew
Gospel found with it. The great privileges hereupon conferred upon the see of Salamis.
A description of his person and temper. The epistle anciently published under his
name. The design of it. The practical part of it excellently managed under the two
ways of light and darkness.
I. The proper and (if I may so term it) original name of this
apostle (for with that title St. Luke, and after him the ancients,
''
Clirysost. Homil. xi. in Act Apostt. s. 1. vol. ix. p. 01.
;
pleasure of man's life, that it was of old called Macaria, or " the
Happy ;" and the historian reports,* that Fortius Cato, having
conquered this island, brought hence greater treasures into the
exchequer at Rome, than had been done in any other triumph.
But in nothing was it more happy, or upon any account more
memorable in the records of the church, than that it was the
birth-place of our apostle ; whose ancestors in the troublesome
times of Antiochus Epiphanes, or in the conquest of Judaea by
Pompey and the Roman army, had fled over hither, (as a place
best secured from violence and invasion,) and settled here.
II. He was descended of the tribe of Levi, and the line of the
<=
Philem. 7. *•
Vid. Notker.' Martyr, ad III. Id. Jun. Canis. Antiq. Lect. vol. vi.
e L. Flor. 1. iii. c. 9.
^ Alexand. Monach. Encom. S. Barnab. inter vitas S. Metaph. cxtat. ap Sur. ad Jun.
XI. vid. ilt. n. 4, 5, 6.
92 THE LIFE OF
voutl y exercising liiinself in fasting and prayer. We are further
told,*^ tluit being a frequent spectator of our Saviour's miracles,
and among the rest of his curing the paralytic at the pool of
Bethesda, he was soon convinced of his divinity, and persuaded
to deliver up himself to his discipline and institutions: and as
the nature of true goodness is ever communicative, he presently
went and acquaintedhis sister Mary with the notice of the
who hastened to come to him, and importuned him to
Messiah,
come home to her house, where our Lord afterwards (as the
church continued to do after his decease) was wont to assemble
with his disciplesand that her son Mark was that " young
;
IV. The church being dispersed up and down after St. Ste-
phen''s martyrdom, we have no certain account what became of
him in all probability he stayed with the apostles at Jerusalem,
;
where we find him not long after St. Paul's conversion. For
that fierce and active zealot being miraculously taken off in the
height of his rage and fury, and putting on now the innocent
and inoffensive temper of a lamb, came after some little time to
Jerusalem, and addressed himself to the church. But they, not
satisfied in the reality of his change, and fearing it might be
nothing but a subtle artifice to betray them, universally shunned
his company; and what wonder if the harmless sheep fled at
the siffht of the wolf that had made such havoc of the flock till :
to be his successor, " he laid his hands on him, and gave him the
charge before all This custom they con-
the congregation."''
stantly kept in appointing both civil and ecclesiastical officers,
and that not only while their temple and polity stood, but long
after the fall of their church and state. For so Benjamin the
Jew tells us,^ that in his time all the Israelites of the East,
when they wanted a rabbin or teacher in their synagogues,
were wont to bring him to the nSjH Wi^'^^ ^s they call him the
al')(^lJiak(OTdp')(7]<;^ or " head of the captivity,'' residing at Babylon,
(at that time R. Daniel the son of Hasdai,) that he might re-
ceive jniirm rT]D''I2DrT power by " imposition of hands" to become
preacher to them. From the Jews it was together with some
other rites transferred into the Christian church, in ordaining
guides and ministers of religion, and has been so used through
all ages and periods to this day. Though the ')(^etpo6eaia and
the x^cpoTovia are not of equal extent in the Avritings and prac-
tice of the church ; the one implying the bare rite of laying on
of hands, while the other denotes ordination itself, and the entire
solemnity of the action. Whence the apostolical constitutor,*
speaking of the presbyter's interest in this affair, says ^et/ao^eret
ov '^ecpoTovel, he lays on his hands, but he does not ordain ;
> Acts xiii. 13. ' Horn. xxx. in Act. Apostt. s. 3. vol. ix. p. 237.
SAINT BARNABAS. 97
uncle Barnabas, which, one tells us,*^ he did with tears and great
<^
Alexand. Monach. encom. S. Barnab. inter vitas S. Metapli. ap. Sur. ad Jun. xi. n. 15.
VOL. I. H
98 THE LIFE OF
more undaunted resolution. But they were especially careful to
mind the great affair they were sent about, and accordingly
opened the case in a public council convened for that purpose.
And Peter having first given his sentence, that the Gentile
converts were under no such obligation, Paul and ]Jarnabas
acquainted the synod what great things God by their ministry
had wrought for the conversion of the Gentiles a plain evidence
;
that they were accepted by God without the Mosaic rites and
ceremonies. The matter being decided by the council, the
determination was drawn up into the form of a synodical
epistle, which was delivered to Barnabas and I^aul, to whom
the council gave this eulogium and character, that they were
" men that had hazarded their lives for the name of the Lord
Jesus Christ,"'' with Avhom they joined two of their own, that
they might carry it to the churches. Being come to Antioch
they delivered the decrees of the council, wherewith the church
was abundantly satisfied, and the controversy for the present
laid asleep.
XL It was not long after this that St. Peter came down to
Antioch,'' who, loth to exasperate the zealous Jews, withdrew all
best are men of like passions and infirmities with others, subject
to be transported with partiality, and carried off with the heats
of an irregular passion, so it lets us see " how great a matter a
little fire kindles," '
and how inconsiderable an occasion may
minister to strife and division, and hazard the breach of the
firmest charity and friendship. The issue was that the to
Theodoret^ styles these two apostles,) this
^evyo'i TO lepbv, (as
sacred pair, that had hitherto equally and unanimously drawn
the yoke of the gospel, now drew several ways, and in some dis-
content pai'ted from each other: St. Paul, taking Silas, went to
the churches of Syria and Cilicia ; while Barnabas, accompanied
with his cousin Mark, set sail for Cyprus, his own country.
XII. Thus far the sacred historian has for the main gone
before us, who here breaks off his accounts concerning him.
What became of him afterwards we are left under great uncer-
tainty. Dorotheus'' and the author of the Recognitions,' and some
other writings attributed to St. Clemens, make him to have
been at Rome, and one of the first that preached the Christian
faith in that city for which Baronius*^ falls foul upon them, not
;
H 2
100 THE LIFE OF
world vou unjnstlv possess before liis righteous face. But if you
reform, aud live acoordiug to bis laws, you shall be translated
iuto another world, whore you shall become immortal, and enjoy
the inetlable glories and ha])piness of that state. Whereas if you
persist in your infidelity, your souls, after the dissolution of these
bodies, shall be cast into a place of flames, where they shall be
eternally tormented under the anguish of an unprofitable and too
late repentance. For the present life is to every one the only
space and season of repentance." This was spoken with groat
plainness and simplicity, and without any artificial schemes of
speech, and accordingly took with the attentive i)opulacy while :
'
Clcmentin. Horn. i. 8, 9, 10. "• Epitom. de pest. B. Petri, c. 8, <S:c.
" Clementin. et Kpitoni. ibid. Alexand. Monach. encom. S. Baruab. inter vitas S. Me-
taph. ap. Sur. ad Juii. xi. n. 13, 14.
" Baron, ad Ann. 51. n. 54. Sanct. dc praed. S. Jac. Tr. iii. c. 1. n. 9.
P SjTiops. in P.ilil. i)atruin, vol. ii. p. 182, i Alexand. ib. n. 18. et seq.
SAINT BARNABAS. 101
faith of it must
upon the credit of the relater, who, Baronius'"
rest
tells us, lived at the same time when his corpse was first found
out) that they threw his body into the fire with an intent to con-
sume it, but that the flames had not the least power upon it, and
that Mark, his kinsman, privately buried it in a cave not far dis-
tant from the city, his friends resenting the loss with solemn
lamentation. I omit the miracles reported to have been done at
his tomb the remains of his body were discovered in the reign
:
his own rights; and how easy was it to take this occasion, of find-
ing St. Barnabas's body, to add that of the appearances to him,
to gain credit to the cause, and advance it with the emperor ?
And accordingly it had its designed effect and whoever reads ;
sourness and austerity, his speech sweet and obliging; his garb
was mean, and such as became a man of a mortified life, his gait
the Christian and the spiritual life, which are there with ad-
mirable accuracy and succinctness reckoned up under that of ;
Thou shalt love thy Creator. Thou shalt glorify him who re-
deemed thee from death. Thou shalt be simple in heart, and
being rich in spirit shalt not join thyself to him that walks in the
way of death. Thou shalt hate to do that which is displeasing
unto God. Thou shalt hate all manner of hypocrisy. Thou
shalt not forsake the commandments of the Lord. Exalt not
thyself, but be of an humble mind. Thou shalt not assume
glory to thyself. Neither shalt thou take evil council against
thy neighbour. Thou shalt not add boldness to thy soul. Thou
shalt not commit fornication, nor be guilty of adultery or bug-
gery. Thou shalt not neglect God's command in correcting
other men's impurity, nor shalt thou have respect of persons,
when thou reprovest any man for his faults. Thou shalt be meek
and and stand in awe of the words which thou hearest.
silent,
Thou shalt not remember evil against thy brother. Thou shalt
not be of a double and unstable mind, doubting whether thus or
thus. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord in vain.
Thou shalt love thy neighbour above thy life. Thou shalt not
destroy a child by abortion, nor make it away when it is born.
Thou hand from thy son, or from thy
shalt not withhold thy
daughter, but fi'om their youth shalt teach them the fear of the
Lord. Be not desirous of thy neighbour's goods, nor covet much.
Neither shalt thou heartily join with the proud, but shalt be
numbered with the just and the humble. Entertain trials and
temptations, when they happen to thee, as instruments of good.
Thou shalt not be double-minded, nor of a deceitful tongue, for
a double tongue is the snare of death. Thou shalt be subject to
the Lord, and to masters as God's representatives, in reverence
and fear. Thou shalt not command thy maid or man-servant
with bitterness and severity, those especially that hope in God,
lest thou thyself prove one that fearest not him, who is over both :
take, and shut them when thou shouldst give. Love all those
that speak to thee the w^ord of the Lord, as the apple of thine
eye. •llemember the day of judgment night and day. Seek out
daily the faces of holy men, and searching by the word, go forth
to exhort, and by it study to save a soul. And with thy hands
shalt thou labour for the redemption of thy sins. Delay not to
give, nor begrudge when thou art charitable. Give to every one
that asks thee and thou shalt know who is the good recom-
;
penser of the reward. Thou shalt keep the things which thou
hast received, neither adding to them, nor taking from them.
Tliou shalt ever hate a wicked person. Judge righteously.
Make no schism. ^lake peace between those that are at differ-
ence, reconciling them to each other. Confess thy sins, and come
not to prayer with an evil conscience. This is the way of
light.""
X VL " But now the way of darkness is crooked and full of
curses. For it is the way of eternal death attended with punish-
ment ; wherein are things destructive to their souls — idolatry,
audaciousness, height of domination, hypocrisy, double-hearted-
ness, adultery, murder, rapine, pride, transgression, deceit, ma-
lice, arrogance, witchcraft, magic, covetousness, want of the fear
of God ; persecutors of good men, haters of the truth, men who
love but do not know the wages of righteousness ; persons that
adhere not to what is good, nor who by righteous judgment
regard the case of the widow and the orphan ; watchful not for
the fear of God, but for what is evil ; great strangers to meek-
ness and patience ; lovers of vanity, greedy of revenge, who
compassionate not the poor, nor endeavour to relieve the op-
pressed ; prone to detraction, not knowing their Maker ; mur-
derers of children, defacers of God's workmanship, such as turn
away themselves from the needy, add affliction to the afflicted,
plead for the rich, and unjustly judge the poor, sinners altoge-
ther." '^
And having thus described these two different ways, he
concludes his discourse with a hearty and passionate exhortation,
that since the time of rewards and punishments was drawing on,
they would mind these things, as those that were taught of God,
•
•>
Baniab. Ep. c. If), Ibid. c. 20.
SAINT BARNABAS. 105
St. Timothy's country and kindred. His religious education. The great advantages of
an early piety. Converted to Christianity by St. Paul, and made choice of to be his
companion. Circumcised by St. Paul, and why. This no contnidicting St. Paul's
doctrine concerning circumcision. His travels with St. Paul for the propagation of the
faith. His return from Thessalonica, and St, Paul's two epistles to that church. St.
Paul's first and second epistles to him, and the importance of them. The manners of
the Ephesians noted. Their festival called Karayaiyiov. St. Timothy's martyrdom.
The time of his death, place of his burial, and translation of his body. His weak and
infirm constitution. His great abstinence, and admirable zeal. St. Paul's singular
affection for him. Different from Timotheus in St. Denys the Areopagite. Another
Timothy, St Paul's disciple, martyred under Antoninus.
Lois, was a Jewess, who yet scrupled not to marry with this
Greek an argument that the partition wall now tottered, and
;
was ready to fall, when Jew and Gentile began thus to match
together.'' His mother and grandmother were women very emi-
iifntiy virtuous and holy, and seem to have been among.st the
first that were converted to the Christian faith. Nor was it the
least instance of their piety, the care they took of his education,
* Chrysost. Horn. i. in 2 Tim. s. 2. vol. xi. p. 660.
THE LIFE OF SAINT TIMOTHY. 107
God was pleased to transplant him into a better soil. St. Paul,
ther notice of them till their coming to him at Corinth, his next
remove. Where at their first arrival, (if it was not at Athens,)
St. Paul despatched away Timothy to Thessalonica,*" to inquire
into the state of Christianity in that city, and to confirm them in
the belief and profession of the Gospel for he seems to have had ;
a more peculiar kindness for that church, having since his last
being there more than once resolved himself to go back to them,'
but that the great enemy of souls had still thrown some rub in
theway to hinder him.
IV. From Thessalonica Timothy returned™ with the welcome
news of their firmness and constancy, notwithstanding the perse-
cutions they endured, their mutual charity to each other, and
particular affection to St. Paul news wherewith the good man
;
k 1 Thess. iii. 1, 2, 3. '1 Thess. ii. 17, 18, 19. " 1 Thes8. iii. 6, 7, &c.
110 THE LIFE OF
at Corinth, wlien St. Paul resolved upon a journey to Jerusalem,
where he stayed not long, but went for Antioch and having ;
P Martyr. Tim. ap. Phot. Bibl. CCLTV. i Cone. Chalccd. Act. xi. vol. ii. p. 557.
' Lib. vii. c. 47. " Martyr. Tim. ap. Phot, ut supra.
' Horn. XV. in 1 Tim. s. 2. vol. xi. p. G."??. " Argiim. in 1 ad Tim. vol. iii. p. (i38.
" Com. in 1 Tim. iii. vol. iii. p. fi52.
SAINT TIMOTHY. Ill
churches that met at Miletus, it is said, that " the Holy Ghost
had made them bishops, or overseers of the church." And this
way of election by way of prophetic revelation continued in use
at least during the apostolic age : Clemens,'' in his Epistle to the
Corinthians, tells us, that the apostles preaching up and down
cities and countries, constituted their first-fruits to be the bishops
and deacons of those who should believe, hoKifida-avre'^ tu>
TTveviJiaTc, " making trial of them by the Spirit :" and another
to. And yet the word veorrj'i, youth, admits a greater latitude
than we in ordinary speech confine it to. Cicero tells us of him-
self,* that he was adolescentulus, but a very youth when he
any force or violence to the word, might very well consist with
his being at least thirty, or five and thirty years of age, and he
so styled only comparatively with respect to that weighty
function, which was wont to be conferred upon none but grave
and aged men. But of this enough.
Vn. St. Timothy, thus fixed at Ephesus, did yet accompany
St. PauP some part of his journey into Greece, at least went to
him thither upon some urgent affairs of the church, and then
returned to his charge. Not long after wliich St. Paul wrote his
first epistle to him, to encourage him in his duty, and direct him
* In Orator, c. 30. ' Noct Attic. 1. xv. c. 20. k Joseph. Antiq. 1. xiv. c. 1 3.
*•
Hist. 1. i. p. 11. ubi vid. Casaub. Comiii. p. 129. et ejusd. cxcrcit. nd Baron. Appar.
n. 99.
'
Annot. in loc. ^ Acts xx. 2, 3, &c. '
Hist. Eccl. lib. ii. c. 34.
SAINT TIMOTHY. 113
removed from thence, till his translation into heaven. And here
it was that he became acquainted with St. John, whose apostolical
province mainly lay in Asia, and the parts about Ephesus and ;
sober and thrifty than the rest, enacting a decree, " Let none of
ours be thrifty."'' They were strangely bewitched with the
study of magic, and the arts of sorcery and divination ; miserably
VOL. I. I
;:
Diana, for which they were famous through the whole world.
Among their many idolatrous festivals they had one called
KATAFfinON/ which Avas celebrated after this manner:
hahiting themselves in an antic dress, and covering their faces
with ugly vizors, that they might not be known, with clubs in
their hands, they carried idols in a wild and a frantic manner up
and down the more eminent places of the city, singing certain
songs and verses to them and without any compassion or
;
respect either to age or sex, setting upon all persons that they
met, they beat out their brains, glorying in as a brave achieve-
it
ment, and a great honour to their gods. This cursed and exe-
crable custom gave just offence to all pious and good men,
especially St. Timothy, whose was grieved to see God so
spirit
tion. When that would not do, out he comes to them into the
midst of the street upon one of these fatal solemnities, and re-
proves them with some necessary sharpness and severity. ]?ut
to breathe, took up, and lodged him without the gate of the
city, where the third day after he expired. He suffered martyr-
dom on the thirtieth day of the fourth month, according to the
Asian computation, or in the Roman account on the twenty-
second of January, as the Greek church celebrates his memory,
or the twenty-fourth, according to the Latin. happened (as It
•
Martyr. Timoth. Apost. ap. Phot. Bibl. 254. Com. de S. Timoth. S. Metaphr. apucl
Sur. ad Jan. 24. Fragment, vit. S. Timoth. Graece ap. P. Halloix in vit. Polycarp. forsan
ex Act. S. Timoth. a Polycrat. (uti aiunt) scriptis, quae eadcm hahent, ap. Bolland. ad
Januar. 24.
;
" youthful lusts"" which St. Paul cautioned him to shun, there
being no such way to extinguish the fire, as to withdraw the
fuel : he allowed himself no delicious meats, and generous wines
bread and water "w^as his usual bill of fare, till by excessive ab-
water, but use a little wine for his stomach's sake, and his often
infirmities." ""
And yet in the midst of this weak tottering
carcase there dwelt a vigorous and sprightly mind, a soul acted
by a mighty zeal, and inspired with a true love to God : he
thought no difficulties great, no dangers formidable, that he
might be serviceable to the purposes of religion, and the interest
of souls he flew from place to place with a quicker speed, and
:
li
116 TPIE LIFE OF
nothing but a dull find a heavy soul to inform it ; so bodily
weakness is no great impediment, where there is a quick and a
generous mind to animate and enliven it.
seek their own, not the things that are Jesus Christ's but ye ;
know the proof of him, that as a son with the father he hath
served with me in the gospel." " And because he knew that he
was a young man, and of a temper and easily capable of harsh
unkind impressions, he entered a particular caution on his behalf
with the church of Corinth, " If Timotheus come, see that he
may be with you without fear, for he worketh the work of the
Lord, as I also do let no man therefore despise him, but con-
:
duct him forth in peace, that hemay come unto nie."'^ Instances
of a great and tenderness, and Avhich plainly suppose
care
Timothy to have been an extraordinary person. His very calling
him his " dearly beloved son," Chrysostom* thinks a sufficient
argument of his virtue. For such affection not being founded in
nature, can flow from nothing but virtue and goodness, the lovely
and essential ornaments of a divine and a holy soul. We love
our children not only because witty, or handsome, kind and
dutiful, but because they are ours, and very often for no other
reason ; nor can we do otherwise, so long as we are subject to
the impressions and the laws of nature. Whereas true goodness
and virtue have no other arts but their own naked worth and
beauty to recommend them, nor can by any other argument
challenge regard and veneration from us.
XI. Some dispute there has been among- the writers of the
church of Rome, whether our St. Timothy was the same with
him, to whom Dionysius the Areopagite dedicates the books said
to be written by him and troops of arguments are mustered on
;
''
Pet. de Natal. Hist. SS. 1. i. c. 24. Naucler. Chron. vol ii. gener. 6. confer. Adon.
Martyr, ad xii. Kal. Jul. vid. Usser. de primord. c. 3.
His country enquired into. The report of his noble extraction. His education and conver-
sion to Christianity. His acquaintance with, and accompanying St. Paul to the synod
at Jerusalem. St. Paul's refusing to circumcise him, and why. His attending St.
Paul in his travels. Their arrival in Crete. Titus constituted by him bishop of that
island. The testimonies of the ancients to that purpose. The intimations of it in St.
Paul's epistle to him. St. Paul's censure of the people of Crete, justified by the
account which Gentile writers give of their evil manners. A short view of the epistle
itself. The directions concerning ecclesiastic persons. His charge to exhort and con-
vince gainsayers. Crete abounding with heretical teachers. Jewish fables and
genealogies what, and whence derived. The jTSones and arv^vyiai of the ancient
Gnostics borrowed from the Oeoyovlat of the heathen poets. This shewn by particular
instances. Titus commanded to attend St. Paul at Nicopolis. His coming to him
into Macedonia. His following St. Paul to Rome, and departure into Dalmatia. 'J'he
story of Pliny the Younger's being converted by him in Crete, censured. His age and
death. The church erected to his memory.
having been so long the seat of war between the Turkish em-
peror and the state of Venice. Antiquity has not certainly
conveyed down to us any particular notice of his parents, though,
might we believe the account which some give, he was of no
common extract, but of the blood royal, his pedigree being
derived from no less than Minos king of Crete,^ whom the poets
make the son of Jupiter, and for the equity of his laws, and the
impartial justice of his government, prefer him to be one of the
three great judges in the infernal regions, whose place it is to
better evidence I dare not encourage the reader to lay too much
stress upon. Let us therefore come to somewhat more certain
and unquestionable.
III. Being arrived in Judea, or the parts thereabouts, and
f
^ Menaeon Graec. Avyova-r t^ Ke' sub. lit. ^.111. " Id. ibid. Isai. xli. 1.
120 THE LIFE OF
convinced of the truth and divinity of the Christian faith, he
the Gentiles, and make them fly off to a greater distance from
Christianity. Accordingly he resisted their importunity with
an invincible resolution, and his practice herein was immediately
justified by the decretory sentence of the council, summoned to
determine this matter.
IV. The affair about which they were sent being despatched
in the synod, he returned no doubt with St. Paul to Autioch,
and thence accompanied him in his travels, till having gone over
the churches of Syria and Cilicia, they set sail for Crete. For
that period of time I conceive with Capellus'' most probable for
their going over to that island, rather than, with Baronius' and
others, to place PauFs coming out of Macedonia into
it at St.
Greece, which he supposes to have been by a sea voyage, passing
by the Cycladse islands through the ^gean sea; or with Grotius™
to refer it till his voyage to Rome, founding his conjecture ujion a
double mistake, that St. Paul and his company put in and stayed
at Crete, when it is only said, that " they sailed under it, and
passed by it," and that Titus was then in the company, whereof
no footsteps or intimations appear in the story. Sailing there-
fore from some port in Cilicia, they arrived at Crete," where
St. Paul industriously set himself to preach and propagate the
Christian faith, delighting (as much as might be) to be the first
messenger of the glad tidings of the gospel to all places where
he came, not planting " in another man's line,'"' or building " of
things made ready But because the care of other
to his hand."
churches called upon him, and would not permit him to stay
long enough here to see Christianity brought to a due maturity
and perfection, he constituted Titus bishop of that island, that
he might nourish that infant church, superintend its growth and
prosperity, and manage the government and administration of it.
This the ancients with one mouth declare :
" He was the first
''
Histor. Apost. ad Ann. Christ. 46. i
Ad Ann. 57. n. 212.
™ In Argum. Epist. ad Tit. Act. xxvii. 7.
" Praef. in Tit. vol. ii. p. 313. inter opp. suppos. ° Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 4. '
P Doroth. S.ynops. vol. ii. bibl. patrum, p. 182. i Ap. Ilier. do Script, in Tit.
*
Chrysost. Horn. i. in Tit. s. 1. vol. xi. p. 729.
122 THE LIFE OF
entirely committed, that he might exercise power and jurisdic-
tion over so many bishops:" "he, was by St. Paul ordained
bishop of Crete, though a very large island, that he might or-
dain bishops under him," says Theodoret expressly.' To which
minht be added the testimonies of Theophylact, Oecumenius,
and others, and the subscription at the end of the epistle to
Titus, (which, though not dictated by the same hand, is ancient
however,) where he is said to have been " ordained the first
bishop of the church of the Cretans." And St. Chrysostom'
gives this as the reason, why of all his disciples and followers
St. Paul wrote epistles to Titus and Timothy, and not to Silas
or Luke, because he had committed to them the care and govern-
ment of churches, while he reserved the others as attendants and
ministers to go along with himself.
V. Nor is this merely the arbitrary sense of antiqiiity in the
case,but seems evidently founded in St. Paul's own intimation,
whore he tells Titus, " For this cause left I thee in Crete, that
thou shouldst set in order the things that are wanting, and ordain
ehlers in every city,- as I had appointed thee;"" that is, I con-
stituted thee governor of that church, that thou mightest dis-
pose and order the affairs of it according to the rules and di-
rections which I then gave thee. " Ordain elders, ' he means
'
• Argum. Epist. ad Tit. vol. iii. p. G98. ' Argum. in 1 ad Tim. vol. xl. p. 547.
" Tit. i. 5. " lloni. iL in Tit. s. 1. vol. xi. p. 737. vid. ctiam Theopli. et Oecum. in loc.
:
" The Cretans are always liars, evil beasts, slow bellies." This
verse St. Chrysostom^ supposes the apostle took from Calliraa-
chus, who makes use indeed of the first part of it, charging the
Cretans to be like themselves, notorious liars, in pretending that
Jupiter was not only born, but died among them, and that
they had his tomb with this inscription, 'ENTATOA ZAN
KEITAI, " Here lies Jupiter," whenas the deity is immortal
whereupon the good father perplexes himself with many need-
less difficulties in reconciling it. Whereas in truth St. Paul
borrowed it not from Callimachus, but Epimenides, a native of
Crete, famous among the ancients for his raptures and enthu-
siastic divinations, ©eo^tX^? Kal ao(p6<; irepl tcl Oeia, rrjv ev-
OovcrtaaTtKijv koX reXecrrLKrjv ao(j)iav, as Plutarch says of him.*
From him Callimachus'' cites part of the verse, and applies it
SAINT TITUS. •
125
silence, mind and truth, the word and life, man and the church
Ampsiu I til t \
Profundity Ubucua ^ ^i , • Word
Auraan ) ( Silence. Thardeadie )
Life.
Bucua !+>,+•
,, .
)i Mind Merexa )
| ,, ^ • j Man
*^*+
.
I *i,
that 18 ^'^^^ ^^
Tharthuu i ^'^^^ ^^
\ j/ Truth.
^^^^j^_ Atarbarba. j
\ \ Church.
&c. &c.
pervert men from the Christian religion, and the plainness and
simplicity of the gospel. Having done with ecclesiastics, he
proceeds to give directions for persons of all ages and capacities,
whether old or young, men or women, children or servants and ;
upon the river Nesus, not far from the borders of Macedonia,
whither St. Paul was now going or some other city, whereof ;
offered to liim, yet (as himself tells us) he " had no rest in his
spirit, because he found not Titus his brother,"'' whom he im-
patiently expected to bring him an account of the state of the
church of Corinth whether Titus had been with him, and been
;
that very church, wherein St. Paul ordained him bishop of that
island. I understand him, where a church was afterwards
" Pet de Natal, loc. cit. ex Act. S. Titi a Zena (uti fcrtur) script. Fl. Pseiulo-Dcxt.
Chron. ad Ann. 220.
" Damasccn. Serm. irept rwv iv ttist. KfKoifj.. y Ap. Hicron. de Script, in Tito_
* De vit. et ob. c. 87. ,
* Ad diom 4. Jan. •»
Cotovic. Itin. 1. i. c. 12.
SAINT TITUS. 129
*=
De Synodr. vol. iii, c. 15.
VOL. I. K
THE LIFE OF SAINT DIONYSIUS
THE AREOPAGITE.
Dionysins bom The cjualit}' of his parents. His domestic studies. His
at Athens.
foreign travels. Mgvpt frequented as the staple place of all recondite learning. His
residence at Heliopolis. The strange and miraculous eclipse at our Saviour's Passion.
Dionj'sius's remarks upon it. His return to Athens, and being m:ide one of the judges
of the Areopagus. The nature of this court the number and quality of its judges.
:
St. Paul arraigned before it : his discourse, and its success. Dionysius's conversion.
martyrdom at Athens, and the time of it. A fabulous miracle reported of his scull.
Tile description of his person, .and the hyperbolical connnendations which the Greeks
give of him. The books ascribed to him. These none of his. Apollinaris (probably)
shewed to be the author of them. Several passages of the ancients noted to that purpose.
Books, why oft published under other men's names. These books the founUiin of en-
thusiasm and mystical theologj'. A passiige in them instanced in to that purpose,
» Ibocr. Ordt. Areopag. c. 14. Vid. Ma.xini. Prolog, opp. S. Dionys. Pref. p. 34.
THE LIFE OF SAINT DIONYSIUS. 131
born in the very midst of arts and civility, his education could
not but be learned and ingenuous, especially considering the ad-
vantages of his birth and fortunes. Accordingly, he was in-
vantages which Athens could afford, that could fill the vast
capacities of his mind, which he therefore resolved to polish and
improve by foreign travels. Being in the prime and vigour of
his youth, about the age of twenty-five years,*" he took with him
one Apollophanes, a rhetorician, his fellow-student, and (if Syn-
cellus say true*^) his kinsman, who was afterwards at Smyrna,
master to Polemon the Laodicean, as he was to Aristides the
famous philosopher and apologist for the Christians. Thus fur-
nished with a suitable companion, he is said to have gone for
Egypt, to converse with their philosophers and wise men, that
he might perfect himself in the study of the mathematics, and
the more mj^sterious and recondite parts of learning. Egypt
had in all ages been looked upon as the prime school, not only of
astrology, but of the more abstruse and uncommon speculations of
theology; and the great masters of wisdom and divinity among
the Gentiles never thought they had gained enough, till they had
crowned their studies by conversing with the Egyptian sages.
Hence it was frequented by Orpheus, Homer, Solon, Thales, by
Pythagoras and Plato, and whom not ? nay, of Pythagoras,
Clemens of Alexandria reports,*^ that he suffered himself to be
circumcised, that so he might be admitted et? ra aSvra, to the
concealed rites and notions of their religion, and be acquainted
with their secret and mystical philosophy. The place he fixed
at was Heliopolis, a city between Coptus and Alexandria, where
•*
Suid. in voc. Atovvcnos.
"^
Suid. ubi supra. Maxim. Pachym. Syncel. aliique plures.
•1
Encom. S. Dionys. vol. ii. p. 213. opp. Dionys. ""
Stromat. 1. i. c. 15.
K 2
132 THE LIFE OF
the Egyptian priests for the most resided, as a place achnirahly
advantageous for the contemplation of the heavenly hodies, and
the study of philosophy and astronomy; and where Straho'
(who lived much about this time) tells us, he was shewed the
habitations of the priests, and the apartments of Plato and
Eudoxus, who lived here thirteen years nay, a very ancient ;
K Alexand. Polyhist. Hist, de Judaeis ap. Euscb. praep. Evang. 1. ix. c. 17.
*•
Clironic. lib. xiii. apuJ Euseb. Chrnn. ad Ann. Chr. xxxii. vid. firwca "ET. AF.
p. 202. vid. Orig. contr. Ccls. 1. il c. .33. et Chron. Alexandr. ad Ann. Tiber, xvii.
Indict 4. Olympiad. 202. 4.
SAINT DIONYSIUS. 183
just exception, when we consider what little care was then taken
to consign things to writing, and how great a part of those few
ancient records that were written were quickly lost, whereof
Eusebius sufficiently complains ; not to say, that a great many
writings might and did escape his notice and Maximus,' I re- ;
" darkness that was over all the earth," and the earthquake that
attended our Lord's Passion, extended no farther than Judea, as
some of the prodigies no farther than Jerusalem. But to what
degrees of truth or probability that opinion may approve itself, I
solemn and grave assembly strike into those that sat in it, that
Isocrates tells us," that in his time, when they Mere somewhat
degenerated from their ancient virtue, however otherwise men
were irregular and exorbitant, yet once chosen into this senate,
they presently ceased from their vicious inclinations, and chose
rather to conform to the laws and manners of that court, 17 Tal<i
avTMv KaK(at<; e/jb/jL€V€Lv, than to continue in their wild and de-
bauched course of life. They were exactly upright and impartial
in their proceedings, and heard causes at night, or in the dark,
that the person of the plaintiff or the pleader might have no
undue influence upon them. Their sentence was decretory and
final, and from their determination lay no appeal. Their number
was our Dionysius, one of the judges that sat upon him and
Damaris his wife (for so St. Ohrysostom'' and others make her)
and probably his whole house. An author' (I confess I know
not by what authority) relates a particular dispute between
Dionysius and St. Paul concerning the unknown God, who as
God-man was to appear in the latter ages to reform the world ;
this the apostle shewed to be the holy Jesus, lately come down
from heaven, and so satisfied St. Denys, that he prayed him to
intercede with heaven, that he might be fully confirmed in this
belief The next day St. Paul having restored sight to one that
was born blind, charged him to go to Dionysius, and by that
token claim his promise to be his convert who being amazed ;
at this sight, readily renounced his idolatry, and was with his
house baptized into the faith of Christ. But I know the credit
of my author too well to lay any great stress upon this relation,
and the rather because I find that Baronius himself is not willing
to venture his faith upon it to which I might add St. Chry-
:
enough, that it was done with St. Paul's own hands. I shall
but mention his journey to Jerusalem to meet the apostles, who
are said to have come from all parts of the world to be present
at the last hours of the Blessed Virgin, and his several visitations
of the churches in Phrygia and Achaia, to plant or confirm the
faith.
VII. All which, supposing they were true, yet here we must
take our leave. For now the writers of his life generally make
him prepare for a much longer journey. Having settled his
affairs at Athens, and substituted a successor he is in his see,
said go to Rome, (a brief account of things shall suffice,
to
where no truth lies at the bottom :) at Rome he was despatched
by St. Clemens into France, where he planted the faith, and
founded an episcopal see at Paris; whence after many years,
about the ninetieth year of his age, he returned into the East,
to converse with St. John at Ephesus thence back again to ;
" Tp 5' Tov tefipvap. " Pseudo-Dext. Chron. ad Ann. Chr. Ixxi.
y Apud Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 4. et 1. iv, c. 23. " Niccph. Hist. Ectl. 1. ii. c. 20.
SAINT DIONYSIUS. 137
''
Usuard. Martyr. Caleiid. Octob. et vii. Id. Octob. Marty . Bedre vii. Id. Octob.
« Greg. Turon. Hist. Franc, lib. i. c. 28.
<*
Vid. Epist. ejus, et Hilduin. Rescript, apud Sur. loc. supra citat.
138 THE LIFE OF
which was quickly improved and defended by Hincmar, bishop
of llhoinis, schohir to llilduiii, and Anastasius Jiibliothecarius
of Rome, to whom the Greek writers of that and the foHow-
ing asjces readily gave their vote and suffrage. Nor has a late
author" much mended the matter in point of antiquity, who tells
''
Apud Usuard. et Adon. Mart. v. Non. Octobr.
140 -THE LIFE OF
to the reign of Adrian, who entered upon the empire anno 117,
partly that they might leave room enough for the account wliich
they give of him, partly to preserve the authority of his writings,
wherein a passage is cited out of Ignatius's epistles, written just
before his martyrdom, anno 107. The reader I hope will not
expect from me an account of the miracles said to be done by
him, either before or since his death, or of the fierce contests
that are between several places in the Roman church concerning
his reliques. One passage however I shall not omit. In a
village in Luxemburg, not far from Treves, is a church dedicated
to St. Denys, wherein is kept his scull, at least a piece of it, on
the crown whereof there Is a white cross, while the other parts
of the scull are black. This common tradition, and some
authors to avouch it,' will have to be made, when
Paul laid St.
his hands upon him at which if so, I have
his consecration :
full of light, his mouth- breathing an holy fire but his mind ;
deal more of the like nature up and down their ofiices. And
ceitainly, were the notions which he has given us of the celestial
' Vid. Author, citat. ap. P. Ilalloix. nut. nd vit. Dionys. c. iv. vol. ii. p. '2ftl.
'" Tp y Tov 'OKToPp.
;
the natures of things, and the more abstruse and recondite parts
of learning, that (if Suidas say true) some of the heathen philo-
sophers, and particularly Proclus, often borrows, not only his
notions, but his very words and phrases from him whence he ;
° Vid. Anastas. Bibl. Epist. ap. Sur. loco supra citato. Chrysost. de Pseudo-Proph.
s. 6. vol. yiii. p. 79. inter spuria.
affinity with the Platonic notions, and some of them not un-akin
to those in Dionysius's books ; and that as to the doctrine of the
Trinity, they were right in the main, which Socrates'^ particu-
larly tells us, the Apollinarians confessed to be consubstantial.
To which I add, what a learned man ® of our own has observed
upon this argument, that Apollinaris and his followers were
guilty of forging ecclesiastical writings,which they fastened
upon Gregory Thaumaturgus, Athanasius, and pope Julius, as
Leontius* particularly proves at large. So that they might be
probably enough forged in the school of Apollinaris, either by
himself, or some of his disciples.
XIV. It makes the conjecture look yet more favourable, that
there was one Dionysius, = a friend probably of Apollinaris, to
whom he is famous epistle that went
said to have written that
under the name of pope Julius and then among his own :
man born in the very centre of learning and eloquence, and who
might easily be supposed to be bred up in all the institutions of
philosophy, and in a peculiar manner acquainted with the
writings and theorems of Plato and his followers, so famous, so
generally entertained in that place. And there will be the more
reason to believe it still, when we consider, that Apollinaris
y Socrat. Hist. Eccl. 1. ii. c. 46. ^ Sozom. 1. vi. c. 27. ex Ep. Nazian. de Nectar.
* Theodor. 1. v. c. 3. •"
Basil, ubi supr. •=
Epiph. Haeres. Ixxvii.
•^
Ibid. vid. Leont. loc. citat.
* Dr. Answer to
Stillingfl. Cress. Apolog. c. 2. §. 17. ^ De Sect. Act. viii.
S Vid. CoUat. Cathol. cum Severian. Cone. Harduin. vol. ii. p. 1163.
h Theod. Hist. Eccl. Socrat. 16.
1. v. c. 9, 10. ' 1. iii. c.
144 THE LIFE OF
reduced the gospels and the writings of the apostles into the
form of dialogues, in imitation of Plato among the Greeks.
And then for the style, Avhich is very lofty and affected, we
noted hefore how was with a
peculiarly qualified Apollinaris
quick invention of words, and a sophistical and way of speech ;
set on foot his heresy, and wherein he had a singular talent, was
rexyf] ^oywv, artificial schemes of words, and subtle ways to
express himself. Besides he was an incomparable poet,' (not
only the father, but the son,) to the study whereof he peculiarly
addicted himself, and wrote poems to the imitation and the envy
of the best among the heathens. In imitation of Homer he wrote
heroic poems of the history of the Old Testament till the reign
of Saul, comedies after the manner of Menander, tragedies in
imitation of Euripides, and odes in imitation of Pindar he com- :
" Alb Koi eV iraiTii' 6 Oebs yivwffKeTai, Koi X'^P^^ irdvrwv' koX Sia -yvcixTiCiiS 6 @ehs
yivdKTKerai, Kol 5ia ayvooirias. Kal iffrly avrov koI v67]cns, Koi \6yos, koI eirtffTTiixri, Koi
fTra<pi], Kol aladrjcris, Kol S6^a, /cot (pavraaia, Kal SfOfia, koi ra &AAa iravra, Koi oijre
VOL. I. JL
. . ;
known to all, and out of nothing to nothing. These are the things
Avhich we i-ightly discourse concerning God. And this again is
Avhich certainly any man, but one well versed in this sort of
theology, would look upon as a strange jargon of nonsense and
contradiction. And yet this is the height of devotion and piety,
which some men earnestly press after, and wherein they glory.
As if a man could not truly understand the mysteries of religion,
till he had resigned his reason ; nor be a Christian, without first
Ad Dorotheum 1. Ad Apolloplianem 1.
yoeTrat, oSre Xiyerai, o(jt€ ovofj.d^(Tai. Ka\ ovk iari n tS>v ovtosv, oiiSe ev rivi rwv
ivroiv yivdiffKiTai. Kal iv irucn Travra iar\, koX iv oiiSevl ovStv, kuI tK irauTwi' iracri
yivaxTKerai, koI i^ ovSevhs ovSevi. Kol yap ravra opdws irepl Qfov \eyoixfv. Kol iarlv
aidis T] BftOTdrr] rov Qtod yvw<ns, t) Si' ayvwalas ytvcoffKo/jLfvr), Kara. t))v vrrip vovv
^vuiffiv, '6rav 6 vovs ruv uvtwv irdvrwv airocnas, tirftra Ka\ (avrhv a<p(\s, ivwdij rals
vTrep(pdf(rtv aK-r'icnv, iKtiQiv kuI tKil T<p ayf^eptwriTcp fiddti rrji ero<l>ias KaraXafiird-
fifvos. Dionys. de Divin. Nomin. c. 7.
THE LIFE OF SAINT CLEMENS
BISHOP OF ROME.
His birth-place. His parents, kindred, education, and conversion to Christianity, noted
out of the books extant under his name. His relation to the imperial family shewed
to be a mistake. His being made bishop of Rome. The great confusion about the
first bishops of that see. A probable account endeavoured concerning the order of
St. Clemens's succession, and the reconciling it with the times of the other bishops.
What account given of him in the ancient epistle to St. James. Clemens's appointing
notaries to write the acts of the martyrs, and despatching messengers to propagate the
gospel. The schism in the church of Corinth ; and Clemens's epistle to that church.
An inquiry into the time when that epistle was written. The persecution under
Trajan. His proceeding against the HetericB. A short relation of St. Clemens's
troubles out of Simeon Metaphrastes. His banishment to Cherson. Damnatio ad
metalla, what. The great success of his ministry in the place of his exile. St. Cle-
mens's martyrdom, and the kind of it. The anniversary miracle reported on the day
of his solemnity. The time of his martyrdom. His genuine writings. His epistle
to the Corinthians : the commendations given of it by the ancients. Its stj-le and
character. The great modesty and humility that appears in it. The fragment of his
second epistle. Supposititious writings. The Recognitions ; their several titles, and
different editions. Their antiquity, what. A conjecture concerning the author of
them. The censures of the ancients concerning the corruption of them, considered.
The epistle to St. James.
L 2
148 THE LIFE OF
we sliall shew here-
written not long after the apostolic age, (as
we shall thence derive some few notices to onr purpose,
after,)
though we cannot absolutely engage for the certainty of them.
There we find St. Clemens brought in, giving this account of
himself.
IT. He was descended of a noble race,'^ sprung from the family
of the Caesars ; his father Faustinianus, or Faustus, being near
akin to the emperor (I suppose Tiberius) and educated together
with him, and by his procurement matched with Mattidia, a
woman Rome. He was the youngest of
of a prime family in
two elder brothers being Faustinus and Faustus,
three sons, his
who after changed their names for Nicetas and Aquila. His
mother, a woman it seems of exquisite beauty, was by her
husband's own brother strongly solicited to unchaste embraces :
' Recogn. 1. vii. c. fi. Clem. Horn. xii. c. 8. Clem. Epitoin. c. 76.
''
Recogn. 1. i. c. 1. Clem. Hoin. i. c. 1. Clem. Eiiitoni. c. 2.
SAINT CLEMENS. 149
looks more like a dramatic scene of fancy than a true and real
history. As to that part of the account of his being related to
the imperial family, though it be more than once and again con-
i Adv. Ilajres. 1. iii. c. .3. s. 2. ^ Kpipli. IIa;res. xxvii. c. (i. vitl. Ilani. Dissert, v. c. 1.
' Cai. adv. Procul. ap. Euscb. Hist. Eccl. 1. ii. c. 25.
"' Dionys. Epist. ad Rom. apud Euscb. 1. ii. c. 25. " Acts xxviii. 23, 24, 25, 28, 29, 31,
SAINT CLEMENS. 151
the difference between Jew and Gentile being quite worn off,
the entire presidency and government of the whole church of
Rome might devolve upon St. Clemens as the survivor and ;
to Ann. Chr. 90; after which if we add the nine years, eleven
months, and twelve days, Avherein Clemens sat sole bishop over
that whole church, they fall in exactly with the third year of
Trajan, the time assigned for his martyrdom, by Eusebius,
Hierom, Damasus, and many others. Or if with Petavius,
Ricciolus, and some others, we assign the martyrdom of Peter
and Paul, anno 67, two years later, the computation will still
run more smooth and easy, and there will be time enough to be
° De Prajscript. Ilaeret c. 32. v Lib. vii. c. 47.
1 De Schism. Donat. 1. ii. p. 36. A Bucher. edit. comm. in Vict. Can. Pasch. c. 15.
"
he died not till Ann. Chr. 100. Traj. 3, it will be very difficult to
find anv way so proper to reconcile it. As for that fancy of
Epiphanius,^ that Clemens might receive imposition of hands
from Peter, but refused the actual exercise of the episcopal
office, so long as Linus and Cletus lived he only proposes it as :
a long discourse urged upon him, and set out at large the par-
ticular duties both of ministers in their respective orders and
capacities, as also of the people ; which done, he laid his hands
upon him, and compelled him to take his seat. How he ad-
ministered this great but difficult province, the ecclesiastical
records give us very little account. The author of the Pontifical
that fathers himself upon pope Damasus, tells us, that he divided
Rome into seven regions, in each of which he appointed a notary,
who should diligently inquire after all the martyrs that suffered
within his division, and faithfully record the acts of their inar-
tyrdom. I confess the credit of this author is not good enough
absolutely to rely upon his single testimony in matters so remote
and distant : though we are otherwise sufficiently assured, that
• Contr. Cnrpocrat. Hacres. xxvii. c. fi. vid. Clem. Epist. ad Corinth, c. 54.
' Extat Graice ct Ijat. inter Patres Apost. a Cotcler. edit.
" Lib. Ponfif. in rit. Clem. vol. 75. ConcilL ed. reg.
i. p.
:
the Roman state beheld with a jealous eye, as fit nurseries for
treason and sedition. Under the notion of these unlawful com-
binations, the Christian assemblies were looked upon by their
enemies ; them confederated under one common pre-
for finding
sident, and constantl}^ meeting at their solemn love-feasts, and
especially being of a way of woi'ship different from the religion
of the empire, they thought they might securely proceed against
them as illegal societies, and contemners of the imperial consti-
tution, wherein St. Clemens, as head of the society at Rome, was
sure to bear the deepest share. And, indeed, it was no more
than what himself had long expected, as appears from his letter
to the Corinthians where having spoken of the torments and
;
maligns the good of others, and hates the instrument that pro-
cures it. This good success derived upon him the particular
odium of Torcutianus,^ a man of great j)ower and authority at
that time in Rome, who by the inferior magistrates of the city
excited the people to a mutiny against the holy man, charging
him with magic and sorcery, and for being an enemy and blas-
phemer of the gods crying out, either that he should do sacrifice
;
to appease the uproar, sent for St. Clemens, and mildly per-
suaded him to comply. But finding his resolution inflexible, he
sent to acquaint the emperor with the case, who returned this
short rescript, that he should either sacrifice to the gods, or be
banished to Cherson, a disconsolate city beyond the Pontic sea.
Mamertinus having received the imperial mandate, unwillingly
complied with it, and gave order that all things should be made
f
Habetur Grsece et Lat. integrnm ap. Cotelerii Patres Apost.
S Ibid. c. 15. ' Lib. xxviii. ff. de psen. 1. 48. Tit. 19.
'
liib. xxxvi. ubi supr. 1. 12. IF. de jur. fisc. lib. xlix. Tit. 14. 1. 1. do bon. damnat. ]. 8.
''
Cypr. Epist. 7*). ad Nemes. Euseb. 1. viii. c. 12.
'
Sueton. in vit. Calig. c. 27. "" Lib. ii. Cod. Tli. de potii. lib. ix. Tit 40.
" Biblioth. 1. xvi. p. 435. ed, 1()04.
SAINT CLEMENS. 157
the man that a mill-stone were hanged about his neck, and he
cast into the bottom of the sea.*"P Where though St. Hierom
tells us,'' that this punishment was usual among the ancient Jews
in case of more enormous crimes, yet do I not remember that
any such punishment ever prevailed among them.
capital I
shall not here relate what I find concerning the strange and
miraculous discovery of St. Clemens's body, nor the particular
miracle of a little child preserved in the church erected to him
in the middle of the sea for a whole year together, (though
solemnly averred by Ephraem"^ bishop of the place,) as despairing
they would ever find a belief wide enough to swallow them, nor
those infinite other miracles said to be done there ; it shall only
suffice to mention one ; that upon the anniversary solemnity of
his martyrdom the sea retreats on each side into heaps, and
leaves a fair and dry passage for three miles together to the
martyr's tomb, erected within a church, built (as it must be sup-
posed by angels) within the sea, and the people*'s devotions being
ended, the sea returns to its own place, rt/icovro? tov Oeov
P Mark ix. 42. "5 Com. in Matt, xviii. vol. iv. par. 1. p. 82.
Serm. de mirac. in puer. a S. Clem. fact. ap. Sur. Novemb. 23. et Gr. Lat. ap. Coteler.
s Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 38. '' De Script. Eclces. in Clem. ' Locis supra citatis.
VOL. I. M
J 62 THE LIFE OF
sure either to reject or entertain it. I am not ignorant that both
St. ITierom'' and Photius'' charge these books with heretical
opinions, especially some derogatory to the honour of the Sou of
God, which it may be Rufinus (who confesses the same thing,*
and supposes them to have been inserted by some heretical
hand) concealed in his translation nay, Epiphanius tells iis,' :
that and the account of St. Peter''s Acts annexed to it, were
it,
''-
Apol. adv. liufin. 1. ii. vol. iv. par. 2. p. 409.
''
Phot. Cod. CXII. < Apolog, pro Orig. ap. Ilieron. vol. v. p. 2.')0.
Hitrcs. XXX. c. 1."). g Cod. CXII.
SAINT CLEMENS. 163
Hia writings.
Genuine. Supposititious.
The heedless confounding him with others of the like name. His parents, and near re-
lation to our Saviour. The time of his birth. His strict education and way of life.
The order and institution of the Rccliabites, wliat. His conversion to Christianity.
The great care about a successor to St. James bishop of Jerusalem. Simeon chosen to
that place, when and why. The causes of the destruction of the Jewish state. The
original and progress of those wars The miserable state of Jerusalem
briefly related.
the rage of the fire. The number of the slain and captives. The just accomplishment
of our Lord's predictions. The many prodigies portending this destruction. The
Christians forewarned to depart before .Jerusalem was shut up. Their withdrawnnent
to Pella. The admirable care of the Divine Providence over them. Their return back
to Jenisalem, when. The flourishing condition of the Christian church there. The
occasion of St. Simeon's martyrdom. The infinite jealousy of the Roman emperors
concerning the line of David. Simeon's apprehension and crucifixion. His singular
torments and patience. His great age, and the time of his death.
same with St. Simon the Canaanite, one of the twelve apostles
others confound him with Simon, one of the four brethren of
our Lord, while a third sort make all three to be but one and
the same person : the sound and similitude of names giving birth
to the several mistakes. For that Simeon of Jerusalem was a
person altogether distinct from Simon the apostle, is undeniably
evident from the most ancient mart^rologies both of the Greek
and the Latin church, where vastly different accounts are given
concerning their persons, employments, and the time and places
" Vi.l. Ciiron. Alcxandr. Olymp. 220. Ind. 1. Traj. 7. ft .\iin. secpient.
THE LIFE OF SAINT SIMEON. 165
husband to the blessed Virgin, and so his father had the honour
to be uncle to our Saviour, in the same sense that Joseph was
his father. His mother (say some)'^ was Mary the wife of
Oleophas, mentioned in the history of the gospel, sister or
cousin-german to the mother of our Lord : and if so, he was by
both sides nearly related to our Saviour. He was born (as ap-
pears from his age, and the date of his martyrdom assigned by
Eusebius) Ann. Mundi 3936 ; thirteen years, according to the
vulgar computation, before our Saviour's incarnation. His edu-
cation was according to the severest rules of religion professed
in the Jewish church, beino- entered into the order of the Re-
chabites, as may be probably collected from the ancients. For
Hegesippus informs us,'^ that when the Jews were busily en-
gaged in the martyrdom of St. James the Just, a Rechabite
priest, one of the generation of the sons of Reehab, mentioned by
the prophet Jeremy, stepped in, and interceded with the people
to spare so just and good a man, and one that was then praying
to heaven for them. This person, Epiphanius expressly tells us,^
was Simeon the son of Oleophas, and cousin-german to the
St.
holy martyr. The Rechabites were an ancient institution,
founded by Jonadab the son of Reehab, who flourished in the
reign of Jehu, and obliged his posterity to these following rules;*^
to drink no wine, sow no fields, plant no vineyards, build no
houses, but to dwell only in tents and tabernacles. All which
precepts (the last only excepted, which wars and foreign inva-
sions would not suffer them to observe) they kept with the most
religious reverence and are therefore highly commended by
;
^ Hegesip. ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 11. Epiph. Hferes, Ixvi. c. 19. et omnia
antiqua Martyrologia, Adonis, Bedge, Notkeri, Usuardi apud BoUand. de Vit. SS. ad
diem 18. Febr.
« Niceph. < Ibid. 23.
Hegesip. ap. Euseb. 1. iii. c. 32. 1. iii. c. 16. 1. ii. c.
honour upon Simeon, our Lord's next kinsman, M'liom they all
judged most worthy of the place. I know Eusebius seems to in-
timate that this election was made not only after St. James's
death, but after the .destruction of Jerusalem, between which
there was the distance of no less than eight or nine years. But
(besides that Eusebius makes the destruction of Jerusalem im-
mediately to succeed upon St. James's martyrdom, when yet
there was so great a space) it is very unreasonable to suppose
that so famous and eminent a church, a church newly constituted,
and planted in the midst of the most bitter and inveterate
enemies, should for so long a time be destitute of a guide and
pastor, especially seeing the apostles were all long since dispersed
into several remote quarters of the world : not to say that most
of the apostles were dead before that time ; or if they had not,
could not very conveniently have returned and met together
about this aifair in so dismal and distracted a state of things,
as the Roman wars, and the utter ruin and overthrow of the
Jewish nation, had then put those parts into. Besides that
Eusebius"' himself elsewhere places Simeon's succession imme-
diately after St. James's martyrdom. Nor is the least vacancy
in that see mentioned by any other writer. The Chronicle of
Alexandria" places his succession, anno 69 for it tells us, that ;
which nistantly like lightning spread itself over the whole nation,
till all places were full of blood and violence. p Florus, unable
himself to deal with them, called in to his assistance Cestius
who came from Antioch with an
Gallus, the president of Syria,
armj, took Joppa and some other places, and sat down be-
fore Jerusalem ; but after all was forced to depart, and indeed
to flj with his whole army, leaving all his warlike instruments
and provisions behind him. The news of this ill success was
soon carried to Nero,'' then residing in Achaia, who presently
despatched Vespasian (a man of prudent conduct, experienced
valour, the best commander of his time) to be general of the
army. He, coming into Syria, united the Roman forces, fell into
Galilee, burnt Gadara, and destroyed Jotapata, where Jose-
phus"" himself was taken prisoner. He pursued his conquests
with an unwearied diligence, victory every where attending upon
his sword, and was preparing to besiege Jerusalem,^ when hear-
ing of the distractions of Italy by the death of Nero, and the
usurpations of Galba, Otho, and Vitellius, he resolved for Rome,
to freeit from those unhappy encumbrances that were upon it
to stand, that is once " divided against itself?" " Simon the son
of Giora, a bold and ambitious man, had possessed himself of the
upper city John, who headed the zealots, an insolent and un-
:
•
Ibid. c. 11. s. 5. " Ibid. 1. v. c. 1. s. 1. c. 3. s. 1. ' Ps. cxxii. 3. ^ Matt. xii. 25.
170 THE LIFE OF
number of the soldiers to his party; and all those mutually
quarrelling with, and opposing one another. Titus with his army
approaching, a little before the paschal solemnity, begirt the city,
drawing by degrees into a closer siege, he straitly blocked up
it
time since told them would come to pass, when " he beheld the
city and wept over it, saying, if thou hadst known, even thou, at
least in this thy day, the things that belong unto thy peace ! but
DOW they are hidden from thine eyes. For the days come
shall
upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about thee, and
compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, and shall
lay thee even with the ground, and thy children within thee,
because thou knewest not the time of thy visitation."^ The truth
is, whoever would be at the pains to compare what our Lord has
said" concerning this war and the sackage of Jerusalem, with the
accounts given of them by Josephus, would find so just a cor-
respondence between the prophecy and the success, as would
temi)t him to think that the historian had taken his measures as
much from our Lord's predictions as from the event of things.
But to proceed. Terms of mercy were offered upon surrender,
but scornfully rejected, which exasperated the Roman army to
fallon with greater fierceness and severity. And now God and
man, heaven and earth, seemed to fight against them. Besides
the Roman army without, and the irreconcilable factions and
disorders within, a ''famine (hastened by those vast multitudes
that had flocked to the passover) raged so horribly within the
city, that they took more care to prey upon one another, and to
plunder tlieir provisions, than how to defend themselves against
the common enemy : thousands were starved for want of food,
who died so fast that they were not capable of performing
to them the last offices of humanity, but were forced to throw
them upon common heaps nay, were reduced to that extremity, ;
by the soldiers, and no longer able to bear the force and rage of
hunger, boiled her sucking child and eat him. So plainly had
our Lord foretold "the daughters of Jerusalem," that "the days
were coming, in the which they should say, blessed are the bar-
ren, and the wombs that never bare, and the paps which never
gave suck."*^
VII. Titus went on with the siege, and finding that no me-
thods, either of kindness or cruelty, would work upon this ob-
stinate generation of men, gave order that all things should be
made ready for a storm. Having gained the tower of Antonia,
the Jews fled to the temple, which was hard by, the ^ out-gates
and porches whereof Avere immediately set on fire the Jews, ;
soldier threw a firebrand into the chambers that were about the
temple, which presently took fire and though the general ran
;
and stormed, and commanded to put it out, yet so great was the
clamour and confusion, that his orders could not be heard and :
when they were it was too late, the conquering and triumphant
flames prevailing in spite of all opposition, and making their way
with so fierce a rage as if they threatened to burn up Mount
^
is, that this fatal siege began a little before the passover, about
that very time when they had so barbarously treated and put to
death the Son of God : so exact a proportion does the divine
justice sometimes observe in the retributions of its vengeance
a fate not only predicted by our Lord and his apostles, but
by immediate prodigies and signs from heaven."'
lately presignified
A blazing comet, in the fashion of a sword, hung directly over
the city for a whole year together. In the feast of unleavened
bread, a little before the breaking out of the war, at nine of the
clock of the night, a light suddenly shined out between the altar
and the tem})le, as bright as if it had been noon-day. About
the same time a heifer, as she was led to sacrifice, brought forth
a lamb in the very midst of the temple. The east gate of the
inner part of the temple, all of massy brass, and which twenty
men could hardly shut, after it had been fast locked and barred
was at night seen to open of its own accord. Chariots and armies
were beheld in the air, all in their martial postures, and pre-
paring to surround the city. At pentecost, when the priests
entered into the inner temple, they first perceived a noise and
motion, and immediately heard a voice that said, Mera/SaLvco/xev
ivrevOev, " Let us depart hence." And four j^ears before ever
the war began, while all things were peaceable and secure, one
Jesus, a plain country fellow, pronounced many dreadful woes
against the temple, the city, and the people, wherein he con-
tinued, especially at festival times, notwithstanding all the
cruelties used towards him for seven years together, when some
made a shift to despatch him by a violent death. But, alas, an
angel itself cannot stop men that are riding post towards their
own destruction. So little will warnings, or threatenings, or
miracles signify with them, whom heaven hath once given up to
an incurable infatuation.'
'Nat. Hist. 1. V. c. 1 i.
''
Joseph, do bello Juclaic. 1. vi. c. .5. s. 3.
'
Vifle .Tosc|)h. ibid. r. 4.
SAINT SIMEON. 173
upon which account two nephews of St. Jude, one of the brothers
of our Lord, were brought before him, and despised by him for
their poverty and meanness, as persons very unlikely to stand
competitors for a crown. The very same indictment was brought
against our aged bishop for some of the sects of the Jews,' not
;
able to bear his activity and zeal in the cause of his religion, and
"
Chron. Alcxandr. ad Ann. 1. Olympiad. 2l;». Ind. l.'i. Vespas. .5. cadom habet dc
Domitian ad Ann. 1. Olynip. 218. Ind. .5. Dnmit. 1.1
• Enscb. Hist. Keel. 1. iii. c. 3_'.
SAINT SIMEON. 175
ful and faithful pilot he might steer and conduct the affairs of
' Anno 4. Olymp. 220. Ind. 1. " Animadv. ad Epiph. Haeres. lx\'i. p. 266.
THE LIFE OF SAINT IGNATIUS
BISHOP OF ANTIOCH.
His originals unknown. Called Theophorus, and why. The story of his being taken up
into our Saviour's arms, refuted. His apostolic education. St. John's disciple. His
being made bishop of Antioch. The eminency of that see. The order of his succes-
sion stated. His prudent government of that church. The tradition of his appointing
Troas, and epistles thence. His arrival at Porto Romano. Met on the way by the
Christians at Rome. His earnest desire of martyrdom. His praying for the prosperity
of the church. The time of his Passion. His being thrown to wild beasts. What
kind of punishment that among the Romans. The collection of his remains, and their
transportation to Antioch and the great honours done to them. The great plenty of
;
them in the church of Rome. Trajan's surceasing the persecution against the Chris-
tians. The dreadful earthquakes happening at Antioch. Ignatius's admirable piety.
His general solicitude for the preservation and propagation of the Christian doctrine,
as an apostle. His care, diligence, and fidelity as a bishop. His patience and fortitude
as a martyr. His epistles. Polycarp's commendation of them.
rived the title from our Lord's taking him up into his arms.
For thus we are told, that he was that very child whom our
THE LIFE OF SAINT IGNATIUS. 177
Saviour took into his arms,^ and set in the midst of his disciples,
as the most lively instance of innocency and humility. And this
affirmed, (if number might cany it,) not only by the Greeks'^ in
their public rituals, by Metaphrastes,<= Nicephorus,** and others,
further assure us, that he was St. John's disciple. Being fully
instructed in the doctrines of Christianity, he was, for his eminent
parts, and the great piety of his life, chosen to be bishop of An-
tioch, the metropolis of Syria, and the most famous and re-
nowned city of the East ; not more remarkable among foreign
writers for being the Oriental seat of the Roman emperors and
their viceroys and governors, than it is in ecclesiastics for its
eminent entertainment of the Christian faith, its giving the
venerable title of Christians to the disciples of the holy Jesus,
and St. Peters first and peculiar residence in this place. Whence
the synod of Constantinople,' assembled under Nectarius, in their
synodical epistle to the western bishops, deservedly call it, " the
most ancient and truly apostolic church of Antioch, in which the
honourable name of Christians did first commence." In all which
a Mark ix. 36. Matt, xviii. 2, 3, 4.
''
Menaeon. Graecor. T^ elKocTTp rod Af Ke/xfip.
•^
Metaphr. ad Decembr. 20. s. 1. Gr. Lat. apud Coteler. vol. ii. p. 163.
•>
Niceph. Hist. Eccl. 1. ii. c. 35. ^ Annot. in Ignat. Act. p. 37.
f Homil. in e Ibid.
S. Ignat. s. 4. vol. ii. p. 599. s. 1. p. 593.
•*
Act. Ignat. p. 1. et 5, edit. Usser. '
Ap. Theodor. Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 9.
VOL. I. N
178 THE LIFE OF
respects it is frequently in the writings of the church hy a proud
kind of title styled QeoviroXif, or tlie cifi/ of God. That Igna-
tius was constituted bishop of this church, is allowed on all
^ Ad Ann. 45. n. 14. vid. Ad, Martyr. Rom. Feb. 1. ' Lib. viL c. 47.
" Ad. Ann. Tib. 19. " Orig. Horn. ri. in Luc. vol. iii. p. 938.
" Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 86.
f Athan. de Synod. Arim. et Seleuc. c. 47. vol. ii. par. L p. 7C1.
•1
Chrj'sost. Honi. in S. Ignat. 8. 4. vol. ii. p. 597. ' Ilier. do stript, in Ignat.
• Socrat. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 8. • Metaphr. ap. Cotcler. s. I. vol. ii. p. 163.
"
:
N 2
180 THE LIFE OF
it was really instituted by Ignatius, but afterwards grown into
good of his flock made him continually stand upon his guard)
thinking it more prudent to go himself, than stay to be sent for, of
his own accord presented himself to the emperor,'' between whom
there is said to have passed a large and particular discourse, the
with leaden bullets at the end of them, forced to hold fire in his
hands, while his sides were burnt with papers dipped in oil, his
feet stood upon live coals, and his flesh was torn off with burning
pincers. Having by an invincible patience overcome the malice
and cruelty of his tormentors, the emperor pronounced the finaF
sentence upon him, that being incurably overrun with supersti-
tion, he should be carried bound by soldiers to Rome, and there
f
Act. Martyr. S. Ignat. s. 2. s Animadv. ad Euseb. Chron. p. 207. ed. 1658.
182 THE LIFE OF
bitter and grievous to him. His great age, being then probably
above fourscore years old, the vast length and tediousness of the
journey, (which was not a little increased by the fiaKpoTepoi Si-
avXoL Tov cpofjLov, as St. Chrysostom observes,** their going the
fjuthest Avay about, for they went not the direct passage to
Rome both by sea and land I fight with beasts, night and day
I am chained to ten leopards, (which is my military guard,) who
the kinder I am to them, arc the more cruel and fierce to me,"
as himself complains.' Besides, what was dearer to him than
all this, his credit and reputation might be in danger to suffer with
him, seeing at so great a distance the Romans were generally
more likely to understand him to suffer as a malefactor for some
notorious crime, than as a martyr for religion ; and this, Meta-
phrastes assures w^as one particular end of his sending thither.
us,''
*>
llomil. in S. Igiiat s. 4. vol. ii. p. 508.
'
l']pist. ml Rom. s. 5. et ap. Euseb. 1. iii. c. 36.
''
Martyr. S. Ignat. s. 8. apud Cotcler. vol. ii. p. 165.
' Vid. Chrysost. Horn, in S. Ignat. s. 4. vol. ii. p. £98. "• Ibid.
SAINT IGNATIUS. 183
for the main keep to the Acts of it, written in all probability
by Philo and Agathopus, the companions of his journey, and
present at his passion two ancient versions whereof the in-
;
not a little refreshed with the news that he received of the per-
secution ceasing in the church of Antioch. Hither several
churches sent their messengers to visit and salute him, and
hence he despatched two epistles ; one to the church at Phila-
delphia, to press them to love and unity, and to stand fast in
the truth and simplicity of the gospel ; the other to the church
of Smyrna, from whence he lately departed ; which he sent, as
also the former,by Burrhus the deacon, whom they and the
Ephesians had sent to wait upon him and together with that :
men (but certainly without any just reason) think this not to
have been a distinct epistle from the former, but jointly directed
and intended to St. Polycarp and his church of Smyrna. Which
however it be, they conclude it as certain that the Epistle to
St. Polycarp, now extant, is none of it, as in which nothing of
the true temper and spirit of Ignatius does appear while others ;
journey which St. Paul had gone before him,'') where (as St.
Pol3^carp intimates in his epistle to that church '^) they were en-
tertained with all imaginable kindness and courtesy, and con-
ducted forwards in their journey. Hence they passed on foot
through Macedonia and Epirus, till they came to Epidamnum,
a city of Dalmatia; where again taking ship they sailed through
the Adriatic, and arrived at Rhegium, a port-town in Italy;
whence they directed their course through the Tyrrhenian sea
to Puteoli, Ignatius desiring (if it might have been granted)
thence to have gone by land, that he might have traced the
same way by which St. Paul went to Rome. After a day and
a night's stay at Puteoli, a prosperous wind quickly carried them
P Hist. Eccl. 1. iiL c. 36. i Acts xvi. 11,1-2. ' Epist. Polycarp. ad Phil. s. 1.
SAINT IGNATIUS. 185
to the Roman port, the great harbour and station for their navy,
built near Ostia at the mouth of the Tiber, about sixteen miles
from Rome ; whither the holy martyr longed to come, as much
desirous to be at the end of his race, as his keepers, weary of their
that possibly the people might be taken off from desiring his
death, he expressed a pious indignation, entreating them to cast
no rubs way, nor do any thing that might hinder him,
in his
now he was hastening to his crown. Being conducted to Rome,
he was presented to the prefect of the city ; and, as it is pro-
bable, the emperor's letters concerning him were delivered. In
the mean time, while things were preparing for his martyi'dom,
he and the brethren that resorted to him improved their time to
pious purposes he prayed with them, and for them, heartily
;
would stop the persecution that was begun, and bless Christians
with a true love and charity towards one another. That his
punishment might be the more pompous and public, one of their
solemn festivals, the time of their Saturnalia., and that part of
it when they celebrated their sigillaria, was pitched on for his
people with the bloody conflicts of the gladiators, and the hunt-
ing of and fighting with wild beasts. Accordingly, on the 13th
of the kalends of January, that is, December 20, he was brought
out into the amphitheatre and according to his own fervent
:
desire, that he might have no other grave but the bellies of wild
beasts, the lions were let loose upon him whose roaring alarm
;
• Paul. JC. Sent. lib. v. Tit. 23. 1. 3. b. 5. ff. ad leg. Cornel, dc Sicar. et Venef.
• Apolog. c. 40.
" Act. Ignat. p. a. ed. Usscr. Metflplir. Martyr." S. Ignat. 8.. 24. ap. Coteler. vol. iL
p. 169. Men. Graec. Trj k6^. rod 'lavvap. Hieron. de Script, in Ignat.
" Kuagr. Hist. Eccl. 1. i. c. 16. i Holland, nd diem 1. Febr.
SAINT IGNATIUS. 187
^ Epist. 97. 1. X. Euseb. 1. iii. c. 34. J. Malel. Chron. 1. xi. ap. Usser. not. in Ignat.
Epist. p. 43.
* Extat ap. Jo. Malel. ap. Usser. Append. Ignat. p. 9. vid. Excerpt, ex Jo. Antioch.
a Val. edit. p. 818.
^ Metaplir. Martyr. Ignat. s. 27. apud Coteler. vol. ii. p. 169.
188 THE LIFE OF
otlier places, but which fell most heavy upon Antioch,'" at that
time filled more than ordinary with a vast army and confluence
of people from all parts of the world. Among thousands that
died, and numbers that were maimed and wounded,
far greater
Pedo the consul lost his life and Trajan himself, had he not ;
it in the very words that follow,) his appetites and desires were
crucified to the world, and all the lusts and pleasures of it. We
may with St. Chrysostom'' consider him in a threefold capacity,
as an apostle, a bishop, and a martyr. As an apostle, (in the
larger acceptation of the word, he being Opovwv 8id8oxo<; tmv
diroaroXcav, as the Greek offices style him,* " the innnediate
successor of the apostles in their see,"") he was careful to dif-
« Dio. Cass. Hist. Uoni. 1. G8. ct Xipliil. in vit. Tnij. p. 249, ^.W, 251. Jo. Malol.
Chron. 1. x. ap. Usscr. not in Ignat. Epist. p. 9.
''
Homil. in S. Ignat. s. 1. vol. ii. p. .593. ' Men. Grsec. rp k. rov AeKfuPp.
' Hist. Keel 1. iii. c. :W.
SAINT IGNATIUS. 189
sheep;"' and this he did with all courage and fortitude; which
is the last consideration we shall remark concerning him.
XII. As a martyr he gave the highest testimony to his fidelity,
and to the truth of that religion which he both preached and
practised. He gloried in his sufferings as his honour and his
privilege, and looked upon his chains, rov'i 7rv€VfMaTtKov<; f^dp-
japlra^, he calls them,'" as his jewels and his ornaments : he
was raised above either the love or fear of the present state, and
could with as much ease and freedom (says Chrysostom") lay
s Epist, ad. Eph. s. 21. ad Magnes, s. 14. ad Trallian. s. 13. ad Rom. s. 9. ad Phila-
delph. 8. 10. adSmym. s. 11.
^ Epist. ad Smym. s. 4. et Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 36.
'
Homil. in S. Ignat. s. 2. vol. ii. p. 594. ^ Ibid. s. 1. p. 593.
1
John xi. 14.
"" Epist. ad Eph. s. 11.
beasts that were prepared for him, and tells the Komans," he dc--
sired nothing more than they might presently do his work that ;
abortive, and the very least of the faithful in the Mhole church
of Antioch and that though it was his utmost ambition, yet he
;
against the most genuine writing in the world. add St. Poly- I
His writings.
Genuine. Spurious.
Ad Ephesios Epistola 1 Ad Mariam Cassobolitam
Ad Magnesianos 1. Ad Tarsenses
Ad Trallianos 1. Ad Antiochenos
Ad Romanes ]. Ad Philippenses
Ad Philadelphenos 1. Ad Heronem
Ad Smyrnaeos 1. Ad B. Virg. Mariam
Doubtful. -^^ Joannem Apostolum 2,
Epistola ad Polycarpimi.
The place of his nativity. The honour and cniinency of Smyrna. His education
under St John. By him constituted bishop of Smyrna. Whether the same with
the bishop to whom St. .John committed the young man. St. Polycarp the angel of
the church of Smyrna mentioned in the Apocalypse. Ignatius's arrival at Smyrna.
His letters to that church, and to St. Polycarp. His journey to Rome about the
Quartodcciman controversy. The time of it inrjuired into. Anicetus's succession to
the see of Rome. His reception there by Anicetus. Their mutual kindness notwith-
standing the difference. His stout opposing heretics at Rome. His sharp treatment
of Marcion, and mighty zeal against those early corrupters of the Christian doctrine.
Irenaius's particular remarks of St. Polycarp's actions. The persecution under M. An-
toninus. The time of Polycarp's martyrdom noted. The Acts of it written by the
church of Smyrna : their great esteem and value. St. Polycarp sought for. His mar-
tyrdom foretold by a dream. His apprehension. Conducted to Smj^ma. Irenarchfe,
who. Polycarp's rude treatment by Herodes. His being brought before the proconsuL
Christians refused to swear by the emperor's genius, and why. His pious and re-
solute answers. His slighting the proconsul's threatenings. His sentence proclaimed.
Asiarchae, who. Preparation for liis burning. His prayer before his death. Mira-
culously preserved in the fire. Despatched with a sword. The care of the Christians
about his remains : this far from a superstitious veneration. Their annual meeting at
the place of his martyrdom. His great age The day of his
at his death. passion.
His tomb, how honoured at this day. The judgments happening to Smyrna after his
dcflth. The faith and patience of the primitive Christians noted out of the preface to
the Acts of his Martyrdom. His Epistle to the Philippians. Its usefulness. Highly
valued and publicly read in the ancient church. The epistle itself.
see no sufficient reason to the contrary, why we may not fix his
Asia, both for beauty and greatness, the most splendid, the
metropolis of Asia, and the ornament of Ionia."'"'''But it had a
far greater and more honourable privilege to glory in, if it was
(as we suppose) the place of St. Polycarp"'s nativity, however of
his education, the seat of his episcopal care and charge, and the
scene of his tragedy and martyrdom. The Greeks, in their
Menseon,'^ report that he was educated at the charge of a certain
noble matron, (whose name we are told was Callisto,) a woman
of great piety and charity, who, when she had exhausted all her
granaries in relieving the poor, had them suddenly filled again
by St. Polycarp's prayers. The circumstances whereof are more
particularly related by Pionius (who suffered, if, which I much
question, was the same, under the Decian persecution) to this
it
^ Manner. Oxon. ii. p. 47. Eadem habet Marm. Ixxviii. p. 129. cxliii, p. 277. Append,
XV. p. 296.
•^
Tjj Ky'. Tou fj-Tju. Tov ^e^pvap.
''
Pion. vit. S. Polycarp. ex MS. Giasc. apud Bolland. Jan. 26.
VOL. I. O
;
credit and ancient date tell us,*^ that he was St. John's disciple
and not his only, but as Irenajus,'^ who was his scholar, (followed
herein by St. Hierom,) assures us, he was taught by the apostles,
and familiarly conversed with many wdio had seen our Lord in
the flesh.
for the honour of St. Polycarp, and argues his mighty diligence
and solicitude for the good of souls, that (as we shall note more
anon) Ignatius passing to his martyrdom, wrote to him, and
particularly recommended to him the inspection and oversight
of his church at Antioch, knowing him (says Eusebius") to be
truly an apostolical man, and being assured that he would use
his utmost care and fidelity in that matter. The author ^ of the
(who could not well be any other than St. Polycarp) to whom
St. John committed the tutorage and education of the young
man, whom he took up in his visitation, who ran away, and be-
came captain of a company of loose and debauched highwaymen,
and was afterwards reduced and reclaimed by that apostle.
But seeing Clemens Alexandrinus, who relates the story, sets
down name
of the bishop nor the city, though he
neither the
confesses there weresome that made mention of it,'' nor is this
circumstance taken notice of by any other ancient writer, nor
that bishop's neglecting of his charge well consistent with
St. Polycarp's care and industry, I shall leave the story as I find
it. Though it cannot be denied but that Smyrna was near to
Ephesus, as St. Clemens says that city also wxis, and that
St. John seems to have had a more than ordinary regard to that
church, it being next Ephesus, the first of those seven famous
Asian churches, to whom
he directed his epistles, and St. Poly-
carp at this time bishop of it for that he was that angel of the
:
is not only highly probable, but by a learned man put past all
at least seventy- four years bishop of that church, from the latter
end of Domitian's reign (when the Apocalypse was written) to
the persecution under M. Aurelius, when he suffered. To
which no other solution needs be given, than that his great, nay
extreme age at the time of his death renders it not at all impro-
bable ; especially when we find, several ages after, that Remigius,
bishop of Rheims, sat seventy-four years bishop of that place.
III. It was not many years after St. John's death, when the
persecution under Trajan began to be reinforced, wherein the
1 Ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 23. "^
Usser. Prolegom. ad Ignat. Epist. c. 2.
O 2
196 THE LIFE OF
eastern parts bad a very large share. Ann. Chr. 107, Ignatius
Avas condemned by tbe emperor at Antiocb, and sentenced to be
transported to Home in In bis voyage
order to bis execution.
tbitber be put in at and converse witb Poly-
Smyrna, to sabite
a thing which he would have done himself, bad not his hasty
departui-e from Troas prevented him. And more than this we
find not concerning Polycarp for many years after, till some un-
happy differences in the church brought him upon the public
stage.
IV. happened that the quartodeciman controversy about
It
with those who were the main supports and champions of the
opposite party, and gave life and spirit to the controversy.
Though the exact time of his coming hither cannot precisely be
defined, yet will it in a great measure depend upon Anicetus's
succession to that see, in whose time he came thither. Now
evident it is that almost all the ancient catalogues place him be-
fore Soter, and next Avhom he succeeded. This succes-
to Pius,
sion Eusebius* places Ann. Chr. 154, a computation certainly
much truer than that of Baronius, who places it in the year
167, and consonantly to this the Chronicle of Alexandria" places
St. Polycarp's coming to Rome Ann. Chr. 158, Anton. Imp. 21.
It is true indeed that intwo ancient catalogues of the bishops of
Rome, set down by Optatus"" and St. Augustine,^ Anicetus is
set before Pius, and made immediately to succeed Hyginus by ;
• ' Chron. ad Ann. 154. " Ad An. 2. Olymp. 224. Ind. 10.
" De Schism. Donatist. 1. ii. p. 36. ^ Epist. liii. ad Generos. s. 2. vol. ii. p. 120.
* Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 14. * Adv. Heeres. 1. iii. c. 3. s. 2. et apud Euseb. 1. iv. c. 13.
''
Ap. Euseb. ib. c. 22. <=
Annot. in Euseb. p. 1 09.
198 THE LIFE OF
whenas words are,*' (if Eusebius rightly re-
Irenums^s exj)ress
presents them,) that he came to Jlome to confer anil discourse
with Anicetus, Sia tI ^/jT-rj/xa irepl t^9 Kara to irda-^^a i)fiepa<;^
" by reason of a certain controversy concerning the day whereon
Easter was to be celebrated." It is true he says,' that they
differed a little irepl aWwv tlvwv^ about some other things, but
this hindered not, but that the other was the main errand and
inducement of his voyage thither though even about that (as :
that Easter should not be kept at the time, nor after the rites
and manner of the Jews, but be celebrated avrf] rrj irepiho^ui
KoX fxeydXr) KvpiuK'p, on the eminent and great Lord's-day that
followed after it. But improbable it is that St. Polycarp should
give his vote to any such determination, when we know that he
could not agree with Anicetus in this controversy, and that he
left Rome with the same judgment and practice herein, where-
* Ap. Euscb. 1. iv. c. 13. vid. etiam. Chron. Alex, ad An. 2. Olymp. 224. Ind. 10.
" Kuscb. Hist. Eccl. v. c. 24. ^ Synod, a Pappo edit. p. 3.
^ Vid. Men. Grsecor. rp ar'. rov ^efipvap. ' Tit. iii. 9, 10.
''
Iren. Epist. ad. Florin, ap. Euseb. L v. c. 20.
' Iren. 1. iii. c. 3. s. 4. et Euseb. 1. iv. c. 14.
doubt but he was told that there was no better way to propitiate
and atone the gods, than to bear hard upon the Christians,
generally looked upon as the most open and hateful enemies to
their gods. And now it was that St. Polycarp, after a long and
diligent discharge of his duty in his episcopal station, received
his crown : so vastly wide of the mark are the later Greeks,P
making him in their public offices to suffer martyrdom under the
Decian persecution. Nor much nearer is that of Socrates,''
Apud Euseb. 1. iv. c. 26. " Jul. Capit. in vit. M. Antoniu. t. 13.
at Corinth and from his by Pionius, who had with great dili-
;
with any thing in all the history of the church, with the reading
whereof he was more transported, so that he seemed no longer
to be himself. Which effect that it may have upon the pious
well-disposed reader, we shall present him with this following
account.
VII. The persecution growing hot at Smyrna, * and many
having already sealed their confession with their blood, the ge-
neral outcry was, "Away with the impious," (or the " Atheists,"
such they generally called and accounted the Christians,) " let
Polycarp be sought for." The good man was not disturbed at
the news, but resolved to endure the brunt : till his friends,
knowing his singular usefulness, and that our Lord had given
leave to his disciples, when persecuted in one city to flee to
another, prevailed with him
withdraw into a neighbouring
to
village, where with a few companions he continued day and night
in prayer, earnestly interceding with Heaven (as afore-time it
>•
Animadv. ad Euseb. Clir. ad N. 2583. p. 221.
^.Epist. Eccles. Smyrn. de Mart. Polycaip. edit. Usser. p. 16. et apud Euseb. 1. iv.
c. 15.
202 THE LIFE OF
had ever been his custom) for the peace and tranquillity of all
the churches in the world. Three days before his apprehension,
falling at night, as he was at prayer, into a trance, he dreamed
that his pillow was on fire, and burned to ashes ; which, when
they being set to guard the provinces, and to secure the public
peace and quietness within their several jurisdictions, to prevent
and suppress riots and tumults, robberies and rapines, and to
inquire into the companions and receivers of all such persons,
and to transmit to the magistrates the examinations and notices
which they had received of such matters. They were appointed
either by the emperor himself, or the 'prcefect'i prwtorio, or the
decurios ; and at this time the custom in the provinces of the
Lesser Asia was, that every city did yearly send ten of the names
of their principal persons to the governor of the province, who
chose out one to be the irenarcha, the keeper, or justice of the
peace. Being afterwards found grievous and troublesome to the
people, they were taken away by a law of the younger Theo-
dosius," though the office remained under another name. This
office at Smyrna was at this time managed by this Herod, whom
him up into his chariot, where both he and his father by plausible
insinuations sought to undermine his constancy, asking him
what great harm there was in saying, " My lord the emperor,"
and in sacrificing, by which means he might escape. This was
an usual way of attempting the Christians not that they made ;
whither when they were come, and a confused noise and tumult
was arisen, a voice came from heaven, (heard by many, but
none seen who spake it,) saying, " Polycarp, be strong, and quit
thyself like a man." Immediately he was brought before the
public tribunal, where a great shout was made, all rejoicing that
he was apprehended. The proconsul (whose name was L. Sta-
tins Quadratus) this very year, as Aristides the Orator, who
Smyrna, informs us,'' the proconsul of Asia,
lived at this time at
(as not long before he had been consul at Rome,) asked him
whether he was Polycarp ? which being confessed, he began to
persuade him to recant; "Regard,"" said he, "thy great age;
swear by the genius of Ca?sar ; repent, and say with us, take '
•^
Oral. Sacr. iv. ''
Tcrtul. Apol. c. 32. Orig. coutr. Ci-ls. 1. viii. c. fi.5.
:
entertain the people with sights and sports upon the festival
solemnities, and therefore it was not conferred but upon the
more wealthy and substantial citizens. In this place was Philip
at this time, whom the people clamorously requested, to let out
a lion upon the malefactor : which he told them he could not
do, having already exhibited the ra Kvvr^'yearia, the hunting of
wild beasts with men, one of the famous shows of the amphi-
theatre. Then they unanimously demanded, that he might be
burnt alive ; a fate which he himself, from the vision in his
dream, had prophetically foretold should be his portion. The
thing was no sooner said than done, each one striving to bear
a part in this fatal traged}', with incredible si>eed fetching wood
and faggots from several places but especially the Jews were ;
he who gave him strength to endure the fire, would enable him
without nailing to stand immoveable in the hottest flames. So
they only tied him wdio standing like a sheep ready for the
;
glory both now and for ever. Amen." Which last word he
pronounced with a more clear audible voice and having done :
the while in the midst, not like roasted flesh, but like gold or
silver purified in the furnace, his body sending forth a delightful
fragrancy, which like frankincense or some other costly si)ices,
with which a dove was seen to fly from the wounds of his body,
which some suppose to have been his soul, clothed in a visible
shape at the time of its departure : though true it is, that thia
circumstance is not mentioned in Eusebius"'s account, and pro-
bably never was in the original. Nor did the malice of Satan
end here : he knew by the innocent and unblameable course of
his and the glorious constancy of his martyrdom, that he
life,
(and they prayed God nothing might hinder it,) to meet and
celebrate the birth-day of his martyrdom, both to do honour to
the memory of the departed, and to prepare and encourage others
hereafter to give the like testimony to the faith. Both which
considerations gave birth and original to thememoriw martyrmn^
those solemn anniversary commemorations of the martyrs, which
we have in another place more fully shewed,'' were generally
kept in the primitive church. Thus died this apostolical man,
Ann. Ohr. 167, about the hundredth year of his age for those ;
him to have been of a greater age nor is this any more impro- :
healed, and raised from the dead, alive even in his time and of :
1
Usser. Annot. in Ep. S. Polycarp. p. 2. ™ Ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 3.
n Ibid. lib. iii. c. 32. ° Adv. Hseres. 1. iii. c. 3. s. 4. et ap. Euscb. 1, iv, c, 14.
VOL. I.
P
210 THE LIFE OF
time, and was arrived to an exceeding great age, when he un-
derwent a most glorious and illustrious martyrdom for the faith.
XVI. He suft'cred on the second of the month Xanthicus, the
seventh of the calends of May ; though whether mistaken for the
seventh of the calends of April, and so to be referred to March
26, assome will have it, or for the seventh of the calends of
March, and so to be adjudged to February 23, as others, is
and ornaments of Asia, was turned into rubbish and ashes, their
stately houses overturned, their temples ruined ; one especially,
which as it advanced Asia above other countries, so gave Smvrna
the honour and precedence above other cities of Asia their ;
traffic spoiled, their marts and ports laid waste, besides the great
numbers of people that lost their lives indeed, the fate so sad, :
that the orator was forced to give over, professing himself unable
to describe it.
dom, than with the preface which the church of Smyrna has in
the beginning of it, as what eminently represents the illustrious
'
faith and patience of those primitive Christians. " Evident it
is(say they) that all those martyrdoms are great and blessed
which happen by the will of God for it becomes us Christians,
;
letting us see, that at that time when they were thus tormented,
they were strangers to their own bodies ; or rather that our
Lord stood by them to assist and comfort them. Animated by
the grace of Christ, they despised the torments of men, by one
short hour delivering themselves from eternal miseries : the fire
which their tormentors put to them seemed cool and little, while
they had it in their eye, to avoid the everlasting and unex-
tinguishable flames of another world ; their thoughts being fixed
upon those rewards which are prepared for them that endure to
the end, such as '
neither ear hath heard, nor eye hath seen, nor
hath it entered into the heart of man ;"*
' but which were shewn
to them by our Lord, as being now no longer mortals, but enter-
ing upon the state of angels. In like manner those who were
condemned devoured by wild beasts, for a long time en-
to be
dured the most grievous tortures shells of fishes were strewed
;
under their naked bodies, and they forced to lie upon sharp
pointed stakes driven into the ground, and several such-like en-
gines of torture devised for them, that (if possible) by the con-
stancy of their torments, the enemy might drive them to renounce
the faith of Christ various were the methods of punishments
:
which the Devil did invent, though, blessed be God, there were
not many whom they were able to prevail upon." And at the
end of the epistle they particularly remark concerning Polycarp,
that he was not only a famous doctor, but an eminent martyr
» Edit. Usser. p. 14. confer Euseb. 1. iv. c. 15. ' 1 Cor. ii. 9.
p 2
212 THE LIFE OF
whose martyrdom all strove to imitate, as one who by his
patience conquered an unrighteous judge, and by that means
having attained an immortal crown, was triumphing with the
apostles, and all the souls of the righteous, glorifying God the
Father, and praising of our Lord, the disposer of our bodies, and
the bishop and pastor of tlie catholic church throughout the
world. Nor were the Christians the only persons that reverenced
his memory, but the very Gentiles (as Eusebius tells us") every
where spoke honourably of him.
XVIIL As for his writings, besides that St. Hierom" mentions
the volumes of Papias and Polycarp, and the above-mentioned
Pionius,^' his Epistles and Homilies ; Irenreus evidently intimates
that he wrote several epistles,^ of all which none are extant at
this day, but the Epistle to the Phiiippians, an epistle peculiarly
celebrated by the ancients, very useful says St. Hierom,* ttuvv
Oavfxaarri, (as Suidas'' and Sophronius"^ style it,) "a most ad-
mirable epistle." IrensDus gives it this eulogium,*^ that it is "a
most perfect and absolute epistle, whence they that are careful
of their salvation may learn the character of his faith, and the
truth which he preached." To which Eusebius adds, that in
this epistle he makes use of some quotations out of the first
Epistle of St. Peter: an observation that holds good with the
epistle, as we have it at this day, there being many places in it
cited out of the first, not one out of the second epistle. Photius
passes this just and true judgment of it ; that it is full of many
admonitions, delivered with clearness and simplicity, according
to the ecclesiastic way and manner of interpretation. It seems to
hold a great affinity both in style and substance with Clemens''s
Epistle to the Corinthians, often suggesting the same rules, and
making use of the same M'ords and phrases, so that it is not
to be doubted, but he had that excellent epistle particularly
in his eye at the writing of it is a pious and it. Indeed
truly Christian epistle, furnished with shortand useful precepts
and rules of life, and penned with the modesty and simplicity of
the apostolic times, valued by the ancients next to the writings
" Hist. Eccl. iv. c. 15. * Epist. lii. ad Lucin. vol. iv. par. 578.
1. ii. p.
y Vit. Polycarp. c. 3. n. 12. ' Epist. ad Florin, ap. Euseb. 1. iv. c. 15.
*
De Script, in Polycarp. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 1 08.
'•
Suid. in voc. TloXvKapir. "^
Sophron. ap. Ilieron. de Script, in Polycarp.
''
Adv. Hreres. 1. iii. c. 3. s. 4. et apud Euseb. 1. iv. c. 15.
SAINT POLYCARP. 213
of the holy canon ; and St. Hierom tells us,* that even in his
time it was read in A sice conventu^ in the public assemblies of
the Asian church. It was first published in Greek by P. Halloix
the Jesuit, anno 1633, and not many years after by bishop
Usher : and I presume the pious reader will think it no unusefui
digression, if I here subjoin so venerable a monument of the
ancient church.
* De Script, in Polycarp. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 108.
TO THE PHILIPPIANS.
Polycarp and the presbyters that are with him, to the church
of God which is at Philippi mercy unto you, and peace from :
loosed the pains of death :"^ " in whom, though you see him not,
ye believe, and believing, ye rejoice with joy unspeakable and
full of glory;"'' whereinto many desire to enter, knowing that
" by grace ye are saved, not by works,"*' but by the will of God
through Jesus Christ.
II. " Wherefore gii-ding up yourserve God in fear and loins,"**
love, stands at a distance from all sin. But " the love of money
is the beginning of all evil."' Knowing, therefore, " that we
brought nothing into the world, and that we shall carry nothing
out," ^ let us arm ourselves with the armour of righteousness,
and in the first place be instructed ourselves to walk in the com-
mands of the Lord, and next teach your wives to live in the faith
delivered to them, in love and chastity, that they embrace their
own husbands with all integrity, and others also with all tem-
perance and continency, and that they educate and discipline
their children in the fear of God. The widows, that they be
sober and modest concerning the faith of the Lord, that they
incessantly intercede for all, and keep themselves from all
' 1 Pet. iii. 9. K Matt. vii. 1. Luke vi. 36, 37.
h Mntt. V. 3. 10. '1 Tim. vi. Id. ''1 Tim. vi. 7.
SAINT POLYCARP. 215
him, " we believe that we shall also reign with him." Let the
young men also be unblameable in all things, studying in the
first place to be chaste, and to restrain themselves from all that
is evil. For it is a good thing to get above the lusts of the
world, seeing every lust wars against the spirit ; and that
" neither fornicators, nor effeminate, nor abusers of themselves
with mankind, shall inherit the kingdom of God,"' nor whoever
commits base things.
V. Wherefore it is necessary that ye abstain from all these
things, being subject to the presbyters and deacons, as to God
and Christ that the virgins also walk with a chaste and unde-
:
the tree, who did no sin, neither was guile found in his mouth,""''
but endured all things for our sakes, that we might live through
him. Let us then imitate his patience, and if we suffer for his
name, we glorify him for such a pattern he set us in himself,
;
the saints shall judge the world V^ as Paul teaches. But I have
neither found any such thing in you, nor heard any such thing
of you, among whom the blessed Paul laboured, and who are in
the beginning of his epistle. For of you he boasts in all those
churches, which only knew God at that time, whom as yet we
had not known. I am therefore, brethren, greatly troubled for
him, and for his wife the Lord give them true repentance. Be
;
selves.
VIII, I trust that ye are well exercised in the holy Scriptures,
and that nothing is hid from you a thing as yet not granted
;
:"
to me. As it is said in these places, " be angry and sin not
and, " let not the sun go down upon your wrath."' Blessed is
His birth-place inquired into. His learning. His education under the apostles. Publius
bishop of Athens. Quadratus's succession in that see. The degenerate state of that
church at his coming to it. His indefatigable zeal and industry in its reformation.
Its purity and flourishing condition noted by Origen. Quadratus's being endowed
with a spirit of prophecy, and a power of miracles. This person proved to be the
same with our Athenian bishop. The troubles raised against the Christians under
the reign of Adrian. Adrian's character. His disposition towards religion, and base
thoughts of the Christians. His fondness for the learning and religion of Greece.
His coming to Athens, and kindness to that city. His being initiated into the
Eleusinian mysteries. These mysteries what, and the degrees of initiation. Several
addresses made to the emperor in behalf of the Christians. Quadratus's Apologetic.
Ser. Granianus's letter to Adrian concerning the Christians. The emperor's rescript.
His good opinion afterwards of Christ and his religion. Quadratus driven from his
charge. His martyrdom and place of burial,
that were of the very first rank and order among the apostles' suc-
cessors. There are that make him, and that too constituted by
St. John, (though I confess I know not by what authority, the
ancients being wholly silent in this matter,) bishop of Phila-
delphia, one of the seven famous churches of Asia, and at that
time, when St. John sent his epistle to that church : which I
p. G.ifi.
« Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 37. ' Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv, c. 23.
e Enist. ad Athcn. apud Euseb. ibid.
;
other author,' much ancienter than he, who confuting the error
of the Cataphryges, reckons him among prophets who
the
flourished under the economy of the gospel. know a learned
I
man"' would fain persuade us, that the Quadratus who had the
h Men. Grsec. rrj ko!. tov 'Siirrefx^p. ' Contr. Cels. 1. iii. c. 30.
^ Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. 37. ' Apud Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 17.
not in every place mentioned under all their capacities ? and less
need was there for it here Quadratus, when first spoken of by;
there arose (as St. Hierom calls if) a most grievous and heavy
persecution, and which Sulpitius Severus expressly says'' was
the fourth persecution. And, indeed, how grievous it was, suffi-
been thrown to the lions, and when the mercy of the savage
beasts had spared them, they were ordered to be burnt to death
in the belly of a brazen bull. It is true Tertullian says,' that
init.
-^ 14. ^ Id. ibid. c. 22. ^ Extat. ap. Fl. Vopisc. in vit. Saturn.
Spartian. ib. c.
224 THE LIFE OF
epistle it seems plain to me, tliat at his being there, he had
severely persecuted the Christians, and compelled some light or
false professors to worship the deities of the country, which pro-
bably gave ground to his censure, and to charge the imputation
upon all. And since he looked upon the Christians as such a
vile sort of men, it is the less to be wondered, that he should
connive at, or encourage their being persecuted in other parts of
the empire. He principally applied himself to the studies of
Greece," whereof he was so strangely fond, that he was com-
monly styled Grajculus, the " Little Creek :" this made him de-
light much in those parts, and to converse with the learning and
philosophy of those countries. About the sixth or seventh year
of his reign he came to Athens, where he took upon him the
place and honour of an archon, celebrated their solemn sports,
and gave many particular laws and privileges to that city but ;
;"
there were TravSac/jboi Kadupa€L<;, the " common purgations
then ai uTroppT^rorepoL^ those that were " more secret;" next the
crv(ndaeL<;, or "stations;" then the /iu>7<Tei<r,the " initiations;" and
lastly, (which was the top of all,) the iTroTrrelat, or the " in-
spections." Others reckon them thus ; that first there were the
TO, Kaddpcria, the " purifications" and expiations ; then followed
the TCI fxiKpd [jivaTr)pLa^ the " lesser mysteries," when they were
solemnly initiated and taken in some time they
; and lastly, after
c Apol. c. 6.
^ Excerpt, ex Dion, a Vales, edit. p. 714.
« Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 3. Hieron. de script, in Aristid. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 109.
VOL. I. <4
: :
''
Just. Mart. Apol. i. c. G9. et apud EuscK Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. li.
'
Lamprid. in %-it. Alex. Sever, c. 4."}.
SAINT QUADRATUS. 227
"» Men. Graec. rfj Ka. tov SeTrreyu/Sp. " In vit. Themist. p. 128.
<.i
THE LIFE OF SAINT JUSTIN
THE MARTYR.
His vicinity to the apostolic times. His birth-place and kindred. His studies. His
travels into Egypt. To what sect of philosophy he applied himself. The occasion
and manner of his strange conversion to Christianity related by himself. Christianity
the only safe and satisfactory philosophy. The great influence which the patience and
fortitude of the Christians had upon his conversion. The force of that argument to
persuade men. His vindication of himself from the charges of the Gentiles. His
continuance in his philosophic habit. The <pL\6(To<pov crx^A"* what, and by whom
worn. 'O ypainhs eiridfTris. His coming to Rome, and opposing heretics. Marcion,
who, and what his principles. Justin's first Apology to the emperors, and the design
of it. Antoninus's letter to the common-council of Asia in favour of the Christians.
This shewed not to be the edict of Marcus Antoninus. Justin's journey into the
East, and conference with Trypho the Jew. Trypho, who. The malice of the Jews
against the Christians. Justiu's return to Rome. His contests with Crescens the
philosopher. Crescens's temper and principles. Justin's' second Apology. To wliom
presented. The occasion of it. M. Antoninus's temper. Justin foretells his own
fate. The acts of his martyrdom. His arraignment before Rusticus prefect of Rome.
Rusticus, who : the great honours done him by the emperor. Justin's discourse with
the prefect. His freedom and courage. His sentence and execution. The time of
his death. His great pietj^, charity, impartiality, Sec. His natural parts, and ex-
cellent learning. His unskilfulness in the Hebrew language noted. A late author
censured. The epistle to Diognetns, Diognetus, who. His style and
His writings.
character. The unwarrantable opinions he is charged with. His indulgence to hea-
thens. Kara \6yov ^lovv, what. h6yos, in what sense used by the ancient fathers.
How applied to Christ, how to reason. His opinion concerning Chiliasm. The con-
currence of the ancients with him herein. This by whom first started ; by whom
corrupted. Concerning the state of the soul after this life. The doctrine of the
ancients in this matter. His assertion concerning angels, maintnined by most of
the first fathers. The original of it. Their opinion concerning free-will shewed not
to be opposed by them to the grace of God. What influence Justin's philosophic edu-
cation had upon his opinions. His writings enumerated.
most early writers of the Eastern church, not long after the
apostles as Eusebius says of him ;' near to them,
XP^^V '^"^
» Hist. Eccl. 1. ii. c. 13.
;
betook himself to the Stoics, but not satisfied with his master
he left him, and went to a peripatetic tutor, whose sordid
covetousness soon made him conclude that truth could not dwell
with him : accordingly he turned himself over to a Pythagorean,
who requiring the preparatory knowledge of music, astronomy,
and geometry, him he quickly deserted and last of all, delivered ;
was greatly taken, and resolved for some time to give up him-
self to solitude and contemplation. AValking out therefore into a
solitary place by the sea side, there met him a grave ancient
man, of a venerable aspect, who fell into discourse with him.
The dispute between them was concerning the excellency of
])hilosophy in general, and of Platonism in j)articular which ;
large ; and at last comes to shew him, who were the most likely
persons to set him in the right way. He tells him, that there
were, long before his reputed philosophers, certain blessed and
holy men, lovers of God, and divinely inspired, called Prophets,
who foretold things which have since come to pass ; who alone
understood the truth, and undesignedly declared it to the world,
whose books yet extant would instruct a man in what most be-
came a philosopher to know ; the accomplishment of whose pre-
and integrity;
dictions did sufficiently attest their faithfulness
and the mighty miracles which they wrought, set the truth of
what they said beyond all exception that they magnified God ;
the great Creator of the world, and published his Son Christ to
the world concluding his discourse with this advice, " But as
:
for thyself, above all things pray that the gates of light may set
open to thee; for these are not things discerned and understood by
all, unless God and Christ grant to a man the knowledge of them."
Which discourse being ended, he immediately departed from him.
IV. The wise discourse of this venerable man made a deep
impression upon the martyr's mind,"' kindled in his soul a divine
flame, and begot in him a sincere love of the prophets, and those
excellent men that were friends to Christ. And now he began
seriously to inquire into and examine the Christian religion,
heard the Christians traduced and reproached, and yet saw them
fearlessly rushing unto death, and venturing upon all those
things that are accounted most dreadful and amazing to human
nature, I concluded with myself, it was impossible that those
" Dialog, cum Tiypli. s. 8. " Apol. ii. s. 12.
;
1 Ap. Casau. not. in JEl Spart. vit. Atir. Marni. Oxon. cxliii.
SAINT JUSTIN. 238
must be done either that, or, at most, the foregoing year and ;
come as I am, for I sometime was as you are. These are the
arguments that prevailed with me this the eflScacy and divinity
;
life, he was the first that laid aside the cloak, and, contrary to
that if such a Christian were not so fine and spruce in his garb
as others, presently the common saying was cla])ped upon him,
martyrdom, about the Timo thine baths, which were upon the
Viminal Mount. Here he strenuously employed himself to defend
and promote the cause of Christianity, and particularly to con-
fute and beat down the heresies that then mainly infested and
disturbed the church, writing a book against all sorts of heresies ;^^
that there were two gods, one the creator of the world, whom
he made to be the God of the Old Testament, and the author
of evil the other a more sovereign and supreme being, creator
;
f Orat. de Tempi, p. 10. Ibid. p. 28. h in ^-^t. JEdes. p. 78. ' Cod. CXXV.
''
Haeres. xh-i. c. 1. ' Apol. i. s. 26. " Hseres. xlii. c. 3.
TToyrjpd, or evil principle, which was the Devil, and ruled over
the emperor was a mild and excellent prince, and who put out
no edicts, that we know of, to the prejudice of Christianity, yet
the Christians being generally traduced and defamed as a wicked
and barbarous generation, had a hard hand borne upon them in
all places, and were persecuted by virtue of the particular edicts
" Vid. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c, 18. In tho Benedictine edition now referred to, the
correct order of the Apologies has been observed, and Cave's references consetjuently
altered, consistently with the opinion here expressed. En.
P Oros. Hist. 1. vii. c. 14.
: ;
own God all the while, neglect both the rites of other gods, and
the religion of that immortal Deity, nay, banish and persecute to
death the Christians that worship him. Concerning these men
several governors of provinces have heretofore written to my
father of sacred memory : to whom he returned this answer
'That they should be no way molested, unless it appeared that
they attempted something against the state of the Roman empire."
Yea, and I myself have received many notices of this nature, to
which answered according to the tenor of my fathers consti-
I
•> Ap. Just. Mart, ad Calc. Apol. i. et ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 13. et Chron.
Alex. Ann. 2. Olymp. 237. Ind. 7.
238 THE LIFE OF
dieted be dlscliarged, although it appear that he be a Christian,
and let the informer himself undergo the punishment.
of Asia.''''
XL This letter was sent (as appears from the year of liis con-
sulship) Ann. Chr. 140, Antonini 3. If it be objected, that this
seems not consistent with the year of his being tribune, said
here to be the fifteenth, I answer, that the 8r]fMap)(iK7] i^ovai'a,
or tribunitian power, did not always commence with the begin-
ning of their reign, but was sometimes granted, and that more
than once, to persons in a private capacity, especially those who
were candidates for the empire. Thus (as appears from the
Fasti Consulares') M. Agrippa had the trihunitia potestas seven,
as after his death Tiberius had it fifteen times during the life of
of Augustus. So that Autoninus's fifteenth tribuncship might
well enough consist with the third year of his empire. Though
I confess I am apt to suspect an error in the number, and the
rather because Sylburgius tells us,^ that these fifteen years Mere
not in the edict, as it is in Justin Martyr, but were supplied out
of Eusebius's copy, which I have some reason to think to be
corrupted in other parts of this epistle. I am not ignorant that
some learned men would have this imperial edict to be the decree
of Marcus Aurelius, son of Antoninus. Indeed, in the inscrip-
tion of it, as it is extant in ICusebius, it is Marcus Aurelius An-
toniims but then nothing can be more evident, than that that
:
•
Vidcsis Fast. Consul, a Sipon. edit, ad Ann. V. C. 741 ct Tfifi.
wrote to the cities, that they should not raise any new troubles
against the Christians.
XII. Not long after his first Apology, Justin seems to have
revisited the eastern parts : for besides what he says in the Acts
of his Martyrdom, that he was twice at Rome, Eusebius ex-
pressly affirms," that he was
where he had his dis- at Ephesus,
course with Tryphon, which was after the presentingit is plain
his first Apology to the emperor." Audit is no ways improbable
but that he went to Ephesus in company with those who carried
the emperor's edict to the common-council of Asia, then assem-
bled in that city, where he fell into acquaintance with Tryphon
the Jew. This Tryphon was probably that Rabbi Tarphon,
1Wyr\ ^niDHi as they commonly call him, the wealthy priest, the
master or associate of R. Aquiba, of whom mention is often made
in the Jewish writings a man of great note and eminency, who
;
had fled his country in the late war,^ wherein Barchochab had
excited and headed the Jews to a rebellion against the Romans,
since which time he had lived in Greece, and especially at
Corinth, and had mightily improved himself by converse with
the philosophers of those countries. With him Justin enters the
lists in a two-days dispute, the account whereof he has given us
" Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 17. " Vid. Dialog, cum Tryph. s. 120. y Dialog,cum Tryph. s. 1.
^ Ibid. s. 108. et ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 18. * Dialog, cum Tryph. s. 96.
b Apol. i. s. 31.
240 THE LIFE OF
he thought couhl have been expected from it, wishin(( lie might
enjoy it oftcner, as what would greatly conduce to the true
understanding of the scripture, and begging his friendship in
what part of the world soever he was.
XII. In the conclusion of this discourse with Tryphon, he
tells us, he was ready to set sail, and depart from Ephesus, but
evil, he sought to betray Justin and Tatian, for their free re-
•=
Vid. Hieron. de Script, in Justin. ••
Orat contr. Grace, s. 22.
' Ibid. c. 10. f
Al)ol. ii. s. ?,.
SAINT JUSTIN. 241
friends, she still continued with him, hoping In time she might
reduce him till finding him to grow intolerable, she procured a
;
bill of divorce from him. The man was so far from being cured,
that he was more enraged by his wife's departure, and accused
her to the emperor for being a Christian she also put in her ;
VOL. I. R
242 THE LIFE OF
to death whereat Lucius, a Christian tliat stood hy, could not
:
'•
J. Capitol, in vit. M. Anton, c. 4. ' Excerpt. Dion. p. 721.
^ TSiv (U iavT. I. xi. s. .3.
SAINT JUSTIN. 243
world the least reason to charge them with. With him it was
no hard matter for Crescens to insinuate himself, and to procure
his particular disfavour towards Justin, a man so able, and so
active to promote the interest of the Christian religion. Indeed
Justin' himself had pubhcly told the emperor what he expected
should be his own fate ; that he looked that Crescens, or some of
their titular philosophers, should lay snares to undermine, tor-
ment, or crucify him. Nor was he at all mistaken, the envious
man procuring him to be cast in prison ; where, if the Greeks say
true," he was exercised with many preparatory tortures in order
to his martyrdom. I confess Eusebius gives us no particular
account of his death, but the Acts of his Martyrdom are still
extant," and (as there is reason to believe) genuine and uncor-
rupt, the shortness of them being not the least argument that
they are the sincere transcripts of the primitive records, and that
they have for the main escaped the interpolations of later ages,
which most others have been obnoxious to. I know it is doubted
by one," whether these Acts contain the martyrdom of ours, or
another Justin but whoever considers the particulars of them,
:
most agreeable to our Justin, and especially their fixing his death
under the prefecture of Rusticus, which Epiphanius expressly
affirms of our St. Justin, will see little reason to question,
whether they belong to him. In them then we have this fol-
lowing account.
XV. Justin and six of his companions having been appre-
hended, were brought before Rusticus, prefect of the city. This
Rusticus was Q. Junius Rusticus,^ a man famous both for court
and camp, a wise statesman and great philosopher, peculiarly
addicted to the sect of the Stoics. He was tutor to the pre-
sent emperor M.what remarkable rules and in-
Aurelius, and
structions he had given him, Antoninus himself sets down at
large. Above all his masters he had a particular reverence and
regard to him, communicated to him all his public and private
counsels, shewed him respect before all the great officers of the
empire, and after his death required of the senate that he might
be honoured with a public statue. He had been consul in the
'
Apol. ii. s. 3. " Men. Greec. Tfj a. tov 'louv.
" Apud Sur. ad xii. Jun.et Baron, ad Ann. 165. n. 2. etseq. " Sur. loc. citat.
•' J. Capitol in vit. M. Anton, c. 9, 1 TcSi' eh kavT 1. i. s. 7.
r2
244 THE LIFE OF
second year of Adrian, and again in the second of the present
emperor, and was now prefect of Rome ; before whom these
good men being brought, he persuaded Justin to obey the gods,
and comply with the emperor''s edicts. The martyr told him,
that no man could be justly found fault with, or condemned,
that obeyed the commands of our Saviour Jesus Christ. Then
the governor inquired in what kind of learning and discipline he
had been brought up he told him, that he had endeavoured to
:
pline, how little soever it was esteemed by those who were led
by error and false opinions. Wretch that thou art, (said the
governor,) art thou then taken with that discipline ? I am, re-
plied the martyr, for with right doctrine do I follow the Chris-
tians. And when asked what that doctrine was ; he answered,
the right doctrine which we Christians piously profess, is this,
We believe the one only God to be the Creator of all things
visibleand invisible, and confess our Lord Jesus Christ to be the
Son of God, foretold by the prophets of old, and who shall here-
after come to be the Judge of mankind, a Saviour, Preacher, and
Master to all those who are duly instructed by him that as :
the prophets, Avho had many ages before foretold the coming of
this Son of God into the world.
XVL The prefect next incpiirod where the Christians were
wont to assemble and being told, that the God of the Christians
;
account of the place where he dwelt, and told him that there
he preached the Christian doctrine to all that resorted to him.
Then having severally examined his companions, he again ad-
dressed himself to Justin in this manner. " Hear, thou that art
noted for thy eloquence, and thinkest thou art in the truth if ;
not an error in the number) concerning his age, making liim but
thirty years old at the time of his death, a thing no ways con-
sistent with the course of his life: and for what he adds of
iv Kadearcoar) tjXlklo,, that he died in a firm and consistent age,
it may be very well applied to many years after that period of
his life.
them in their synagogues," and join with any that would per-
secute them to death, yet they returned no other answer than
that, " You are our brethren, we beseech you own and embrace
the truth of God." And in his Apology to the emperor and the
senate,^ he thus concludes, " I have no more to say, but that we
shall endeavour what in us lies, and heartily pray, that all men
in the world may be blessed with the knowledge and entertain-
ment of the truth." In the pursuit of this noble and generous
design he feared no dangers, but delivered himself with the
greatest freedom and impartiality ; he acquaints the emperors,'
' llacros, xlvi. c. I. " Dial cum Tryph. s. 35. " Ibid. s. 96.
y Apol. ii. B. \!i. » Apol. i. 8.2.
;
pears (to omit others) by one instance, his derivation of the word
Satanas ; JSata, (as he tells us,*) in the Hebrew and the Syriac
signifying an " apostate," and J^as the same with the Hebrew
Sata ; out of the composition of both which arises this one word
Satanas : a trifling conceit, and the less to be pardoned in one that
was born and lived among the Samaritans and the Jews every ;
consider that his religion, as a Gentile born, his early and almost
sole converse wdth the Greeks, his constant study of the writings
of the Gentile philosophers, might well make him a stranger to
that language, which had not much in it to tempt a mere philo-
sopher to learn it. In all other parts of learning how great his
abilities were, may be seen in his writings yet extant, (to say no-
thing of them that are lost,) ireTraiSevfjuevr)'; hiavola^ koX irepl
ra Oela ecnrovhaKvla^; v7rofMvy]/j,aTa Trdcn]^ axpeXeia^ efMTrXea, as
Eusebius says of them,'' the monuments of his singular parts,
and of a mind studiously conversant about divine things, richly
fraught with excellent and useful knowledge. They are all de-
signed either in defence of the Christian religion both against
Jews and Gentiles, or in beating down that common religion,
and those profane and ridiculous rites of worship which then
f Contr. Cels. 1. vi. c. 44.
K Sand. Tract, de Vet Script. Eccl. Hist. Eccles. vol. i. Praefix. p. 44.
*>
Vid. Quaest 50. ' Vid. Rivet. Crit. Sacr. 1. iL c. 5.
I*
Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 18.
SAINT JUSTIN. 249
the religion, and disowned the deities of the Gentiles, and yet
separated themselves from the Jewish discipline and way of
worship what was that admirable love and friendship by which
;
they were so fast knit together, and why this novel institution
came so late into the world to all which inquiries (suitable :
he) to set off the native beauty of philosophy with the i)aint
and varnish of rhetorical arts for which cause his discourses,
:
every man that cometh into the world." " God, (says Justin,"")
first and before the production of any creatures, begot of himself
Bvva/jiiv Tiva XoycKrjv, a certain rational power, sometimes styled
in scripture the glory of God, the Son, Wisdom, an Angel, God,
Lord, and Word by all which names he is described both
; ac-
cording to the economy of his Father'^s will, and according to his
the divine Word is the genuine offspring of the mind, the arche-
typal light of light,) and the image of theWord is man. The
truemind that is in man, (said therefore to be made after the
image and likeness of God,) as to the frame of the heart, is con-
formed to the divine Word, and by that means partakes of the
Word or reason."
XXI. Origen, Clemens"'s scholar, treads exactly in his master''s
steps. He tells us,'' that as God the Father is avTodeo'i, the
fountain of Deity to the Son, so God the Son, o A.6709, the
Word, or the supreme and eternal reason, is the fountain and
^
Com. in Joan. torn. ii. s. 2, 3.
252 THE LIFE OF
original that communicates reason to all rational beings, uho, as
such, are elKovef; t^9 elK6vo<;, the image of the image that is, ;
Tov Xoyov, from that seed of the X0709, the Word, or reason
that was implanted in all mankind: thus he says, that Socrates''
exhorted the Greeks to the knowledge of the " unknown God"
by the inquisition of the " Word." To conclude this, he nowhere
affirms, that Gentiles might be saved without the entertainment
of Christianity, nor that their knowledge was of itself sufficient
to that end, (no man more strongly proves reason and natural
philosophy to be of themselves insufficient to salvation,) but that
so far as they improved their reason and internal word to the
great and excellent purposes of religion, so far they were Chris-
tians, and akin to the eternal andWord, and that what-
original
ever was rightly dictated or reformed by this inward word,
either by Socrates'" among the Greeks, or by others among the
Barbarians, was in eftect done by Christ himself, " the Word
made flesh."
Saviour, with all the holy patriarchs and prophets, the saints and
martyrs, should visibly reign a thousand years. He confesses,
indeed, that there are many sincere and devout Christians that
would not subscribe to this opinion but withal affirms, that ;
^ Apud Iren. adv. Haeres. 1. v. c. 33. Vid. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iii. c. ult.
<^
Quaest. xcL ''
Apol. ii. s. 5.
''
Legat. pro Christ, s. 24. ' Stromal. 1. v. c. 1.
SAINT JUSTIN. 255
evident from Philo and St. Augustine, and the king's ancient
Alexandrian manuscript at this day) instead of " the sons," read
" the angels of God," which the fathers, who generally understood
no Hebrew, were not able to correct. And I doubt not, what
gave further patronage to this error, was the authority of the
book of Enoch (highly valued by many in those days) wherein
this story was related, as appears from the fragments of it still
extant.
XXV. I might here also insist upon, what some find so much
fault with in our martyr, his magnifying the power of man's
will, which is notoriously known to have been the current
doctrine of the fathers through all the first ages, till the rise of
the Pelagian controversies ; though still they generally own
X'O'Pf'V i^alperov, a mighty assistance of divine grace to raise up
and enable the soul for divine and spiritual things. Justin ^ tells
I*
De Hab. mul. seu de Cult, fcemin. 1. i, c. 2. '
De Hab. Virg, p. 99.
" De Orig. error. 1. ii. c. 14. » Sacr. Hist. 1. i. c. 2.
" De Noe et Arc. c. iv. s. 8. P Gen. vi. 2, 4.
1 Dial, cum Tryph. s. 92. >•
Adv. Hceres. 1. iii. c. 1 7. s. 2.
' Stromat. 1. v. c. 13. et vid. c. 1.
256 THE LIFE OF
an honest temper of mind, and that the Father draws us to him :
and that the to eV r]fu,v avre^ovaiov, the powers of the will arc
never ahle to wing tlie soul for a due flight for heaven, without
a mighty portion of grace to assist it. The mysteries of Christi-
anity (as Origen* discourses against Celsus) cannot be duly con-
templated without a better afflatun and more divine power ; for
"as no man knows the things of a man, save the spirit of a man
that is in him ; so no man knows the things of God, but the
Spirit of God:"" it being all to no purpose (as he elsewhere ob-
serves) unless God by his grace does (fxori^eiv to ^jyefioviKov,
enlighten the understanding. add no more but that of Ter-
I
[lis Writings.
» Lib. iv. s. 30. vid. etiam s. 66. " 1 Cor. ii. 11.
* Haec erit vis divinae gratiae, potentior utique natura, habens in nobis subjaccntem
sibi liberam arbitrii potestatem, quod avT(lov<nov dicitur. De Anim. c. 21.
SAINT JUSTIN. 527
Sujyposititious. Quaestionum 146 Responsio ad Ortho-
Qusestiones et Respons. ad Grsecos. doxosJ
Quaestiones Graecanicae, de incorporeo, etc. Dubitationum adversus Religionem sum-
et ad easdem Christianas Respon- mariae solutiones.
siones. Expositio Fidei de S. Trinitate.
y Vid. an hie liber sit idem (sed interpolatus) de quo Photius hoc titulo.
VOL. I.
THE LIFE OF SAINT IREN.EUS
BISHOP OF LYONS.
His country inquired into. Ills philosophical studies. His institution by Papias.
Papias, who. His education under St. Polycarp. His coming into France, and being
made presbyter of Lyons. Pothinus, who ; how and by whom sent into France. The
grievous persecution there under M. Aurelius. The letters of the martyrs to the bishop
His confutation of them by word and writing. Variety of sects and divisions objected
interposal. His synodical epistle to Victor. The persecution under Severus. Its rage
about Lyons. Irenccus's martyrdom, and place of burial. His virtues. His indus-
trious and elaborate confutation of the Gnostics. His style and phrase. Photius's
censure of his works. His error concerning Christ's age. Miraculous gifts and powers
common in his time. His writings.
I must needs say, and inconcluding, and which rather shew that
he designed thereby to reconcile himself to the court of Rome,
(whose favour at the time of his writing that tract he stood in need
of, in order to his admission to the bishopric of St. Leiger de Con-
serans, to which he was nominated, and wherein he was delayed
by that book De Concordia Sacerdotii
court, offended with his late
et Imperii,) than argue the truth of what he asserts, so
unsuit-
able are they to the learning and judgment of that great man.
But I return to Trenreus. He came to Lyons, the metropolis of
Gallia Celtica, situate upon the confluence of the two famous
rivers the Rhone and La Saone, or the ancient Arar,
famous
among other things for its temple and altars, erected to the
honour of Augustus, at the common charge of all France, where
they held an annual solemnity from all parts of the country upon
" Hist. Franc, lib. i. f. 2!).
" 1'. de Marc, dissert, de Primat. ii. 111. p. '227.
SAINT IREN^US. 261
the first of August . and upon this day p It was that most of the
martyrs suffered in the following persecution. These festival
solemnities were usually celebrated not only with great conten-
tions for learning and eloquence, but with sports and shows, and
especially with the bloody conflicts of gladiators, with barbarous
usages, and throwing malefactors to wild beasts in the amphi-
theatre ; wherein the martyrs mentioned by Eusebius bore a sad
and miserable part. Irenseus being arrived at Lyons, continued
several years In the station of a presbyter, under the care and
government of Pothinus, till a heavy storm arose upon them.
For In the reign of M. Aurellus Antoninus, Ann. Chr. 177,
began a violent persecution against the Christians,'' Avhich broke
out in all places, but more peculiarly raged In France, whereof
the churches of Lyons and VIenne, In a letter to them of Asia
and Phrygla,"" give them an account ; where they tell them. It
was Impossible for them exactly to describe the brutish fierce-
ness and cruelty of their enemies, and the severity of those tor-
ments which the martyrs suffered, banished from their houses,
and forbid so much as to shew their heads reproached, beaten, ;
Tertulllan tells us,* that the bishop of Rome did then own and
embrace the prophecies of Montanus and his two prophetesses,
and upon that account had given letters of peace to the churches
P Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 1. "> Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. v. praef.
r
Apud Euseb. ibid. » Euseb. ibid. c. 3. ' Adv. Prax. c, 1.
. ;;
the way may be observed, that the iufalUbiliiy of the pope was
then from home, or so fast asleep, that the envious man coidd
sow tares in the very pontifical chair itself. This bishop Ba-
ronius will have to be Anicetus," but in all likelihood was our
Eleutherius, who, in his after-commendation of the Montanists
followed the example of his predecessors," (no doubt Soter and
Anicetus,) who had disowned and rejected Montanus's prophecy
nor can it well be otherwise conceived why the martyrs should
60 particularly write to him about it. And whereas Baronius
would have pope Eleutherius dead long before Tertullian became
a Montanist,^ because in his book against heresies he styles him
the blessed Eleutherius,^ as if it were tantamount with cujug
memoria est in benedictiotie, nothing was more common than to
give that title to eminent persons while alive, as Alexander of
Jerusalem calls Clemens Alexandrinus, who carried the letter,
" the blessed Clemens,"^ in his epistle to the church of Antioch
and the clergy of the church of Rome styles St. Cyprian,^ (then
in his retirement,) " the blessed pope Cyprian," in their letter to
them of Carthage. To this Eleutherius then these martyrs di-
rected their epistle : for the martyrs in those times had a mighty
honour and reverence paid to them, and their sentence in any
weighty case was always entertained with a just esteem and
veneration. These letters they sent to Rome by Irenjeus," whom
they persuaded to undertake the journey, and whom they par-
ticularly recommended to Eleutherius by a very honourable
testimony, desiring him to receive him not only as their brother
and companion, but as a zealous professor and defender of that
religion which Christ had ratified with his blood. I know
Mons. Valois will not allow that Irenreus actually went this
journey;'* that the martyrs indeed had desired him, and he had
promised to undertake it, but that the heat of the persecution
coming on, and he being fixed in the government and presidency
over that church, could not be spared personally to undergo it.
''
Ad Cler. Carthag. Epist. viii. p. 15. Cypriani opp. *= Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 4.
•*
Annot. in Euseb. p. 91 et 92.
;
affirms/ that the martyrs sent him upon this errand, it is safest
to grant his journey thither, though must be while he was it
known with St. Polycarp in Asia,^ and noted him for his soft
and delicate manners, and to whom after his return home, as
also to Blastus, he wrote epistles, to convince them of those
novel and dangerous sentiments which they had espoused.
IV. And now the persecution at Lyons was daily carried on
with a fiercer violence. Vast numbers had already gone to
heaven through infinite and inexpressible racks and torments
and to crown all, Pothinus,'' their reverend and aged bishop,
above ninety years old, was seized, in order to his being sent the
same way. Age and sickness had rendered him so infirm and
weak, that he was hardly able to crawl to his execution. But
he had a vigorous and sprightly soul in a decayed and ruinous
body and his great desire to give the highest testimony to his
;
8 Id. ibid. c. 20. ^ Epist. Eccles. Lugd. et Vieu. ap. Euseb. ibid. c. 1.
him with their feet, and striking him with their fists; tliey that
were farther off, throwing at him what they could meet with,
makins" whatsoever came next to hand the instruments of their
fury every man looking upon it as impious and piacular, not to
:
were come into the countries round him, all along the Rhone,
where they generally prevailed (which seems to have been ob-
served as a maxim and first principle by all authors of sects)
upon the weaker sex, corrupting their minds, and debauching
their bodies; whose cauterized consciences being afterwards
awakened, some of them made public confession of their crimes,
others, though deserting their party, were ashamed to return to
the church, while others made a desperate and total apostacy
from any pretences to the faith. With some of these ringleaders
Irenaeus had personally encountered,™ and read the books of
others, which gave him occasion (what the desires of many had
importuned him to undertake) to set upon that elaborate work
against heresies, wherein he has fully displayed their wild and
fantastic principles, their brutish and abominable practices, and
with such infinite pains endeavoured to refute them : though
indeed so prodigiously extravagant, so utterly irreconcileable
were they to any principles of sober reason, that as he himself
observes," it was victory enough over them, only to discover and
detect them. This work he composed in the time of Eleutherius
bishop of Rome, as is evident from his catalogue of the bishops
of that see," ending in Eleutherius, the twelfth successive bishop,
who did then possess the place,
VI. And indeed it was but time for Irenseus and the rest of
the wise and holy bishops of those days to bestir themselves,
" grievous wolves having entered in, and made havoc of the
flock." The field of the church was miserably overrun Avith
tares, which did not only endanger the choking of religion
within the church, but obstruct the planting and propagating the
faith among them that were without nothing being more com- :
'
Adv. Hseres. 1. i. c. 13. s. 7. vid Hieron. Epist. liii. ad Theodor. vol. iv. par. ii,
p". 581.
™ Prsef. ad lib. i. " Lib. i. c. ult. s. 4.
that our Lord had foretold, that errors would spring up with
truth, like tares growing up with the wheat, and that therefore
it was no wonder if it accordingly came to pass and that we ;
" there must be heresies, that they that are approved may be
:"''
made manifest that they heartily entertain the Christian
doctrine, improve and persevere in faith and a holy life : that if
man would not refuse to eat of fruit, because he must take a little
pains to discover what is ripe and real, from that which is only
painted and counterfeit. Shall the traveller resolve not to go
his journey because there are a great many ways that cross and
thwart the common road, and not rather inquire which is the
j>laiuand king's highway? or the husbandman refuse to till his
ground, because weeds grow up together with the plants ? We
ouo-ht rather to make these differences an argument and incen-
tive the more accurately to examine truth from falsehood, and
realities from pretences, that escaping the snares that arc plausi-
blv laid, we may attain et? iiriyvcoaiv Tf]<i 6vtq)<; ovai^-; d\vdela<i^
the week it would, after the rule of the Jewish Passover, and
this by constant tradition, and uninterrupted usage derived from
St. John and St. Philip the apostles, St. Polycarp, and several
others, to that very day all which he told pope Victor, but pre-
:
vailed nothing (as what will satisfy a wilful and passionate mind?)
to prevent his rending the church in sunder. For the composure
of this unhappy schism, synods were called in several places,^ as
besides one at Rome, one in Palestine under Theophilus bishop
of Csesarea Palestina, and Narcissus bishop of Jerusalem, an-
other in Pontus under Palmas, and many more in other places,
who were willing to lend their hands toward the quenching of
the common flame, who all wrote to Victor sharply reproving
him,* and advising him rather to mind what concerned the peace
of the church, and the love and unity of Christians among one
another. And among the rest our Irenseus (who, as Eusebius
observes," truly answered his name in his peaceable and peace-
making temper) convened a synod of the churches of France
under his jurisdiction, where, with thirteen bishops besides him-
>•
Hist. Eccl. 1. V. c. 24. » id, jbid. c. 23.
» Id. ibid. c. 24. « Ibid. c. 23.
2GS THE LIFE OF
self, (says the forementioncd Synotlicon") he considered and
determined of this matter. In whose name he wrote a synodieal
epistle to pope Victor/ wherein he told him that they agreed
with him in the main of the controversy, but withal duly and
gravely advised him to take heed how he excommunicated whole
churches for observing the ancient customs derived down to them
from their ancestors that there was as little agreement in the
:
' Adv. Hseres. 1. ii. c. 22. s. 5, 6. ™ John viii. 57. " Ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 20.
" Adv. Haeres. 1. ii. c. .32. s. 4. et ap. Euseb. I. v. c. 7.
272 THE LIFE OF SAINT IIIEN^US.
some spake all manner of languages, and, as occasion was, dis-
covered men's thoughts and secret purposes, and expounded the
mysteries and deep things of God ; others miraculously healed
the sick, and by laying their hands upon them restored their
health ; and many raised the dead, the persons so raised living
among them many years after. The gifts (as he speaks) which
God, in the name of our crucified Lord, then bestowed upon the
church being innumerable, all which they sincerely and freely
improved to the great advantage and benefit of the world.
Whence with just reason he urges the truth of our religion in
general, and how much advantage true Christians had to triumph
over all those impostors and seducers who sheltered themselves
under the venerable title of being Christians.
His Writings,
eversione falsje scientiae, Libri quin- Ad Florinum de Monarchia, seu Quod D<^U9
que. non sit conditor mali, Epistola.
Ad Victorcm Episcopum Romanuni de
Not Extant. Paschate, p]pistola.
Libellus de Scientia adversus Gentes. Ad varios Episcopos de eadem re, Epistolie
The great obscurity of his originals. His learned and ingenuous education, and natural
parts. An account of his conversion to Christianity, and the reasons inducing him
thereunto, collected out of his own writings. His scrupling the doctrine of the Re-
surrection. The great difficulty of entertaining that principle. Synesius's case.
Theophilus's conquering this objection. His great satisfaction in the Christian reli-
gion. His election to the bishopric of Antioch. His desire to convert Autolycus.
taking him, and his free and impartial debating the case with him. His excellent
management of the controversy. His vigorous opposing the heresies of those times.
His books against Marcion and Hermogenes. His death, and the time of it. St.
and a pleasant wit, (as appears from his disputes against the
Gentiles,) rendered him a man of no inconsiderable note and ac-
count among them.
VOL. I.
T
;
T 2
27G THE LIFE OF
equally easv to Omnipotence (as AthenaQforas*" and others tils-
the world, like an island in the midst of the sea, into whose safe
and convenient harbours the lovers of truth might fly, and all
those who desired to be saved, and to escape the judgment and
the wrath to come. And glad he was that he was got thither,'
rejoicing that he bore the name of a Christian, to 0eo<piX€<; ovofia,
that name that was so dear to God, how much soever otherwise
despised and scorned by an ignorant and evil age.
IV. About the year 169,'" (Eutychius refers it to the sixteenth
year of Antoninus"'s reign,") or rather the year before, his prede-
cessor Eros being dead, he was made bishop of Antioch, ac-
counted by some the sixth, by the others the seventh bishop of
that see : and neither of them mistaken, both being true accord-
ing to diflferent computations, some reckoning St, Peter the first,
philus, thus fixed in his charge, set himself to promote the true
interest and happiness of men and as goodness always delights ;
••
De Resurr. mort. s. 3. ' Ad Autolyc. 1. i. s. 1.1.
•^
Ibid. 1. ii. s. 14. '
Ibid. 1. i. s. i.
'" Eusob. Chrnn. cod. anno.
" Annal. vol. i. p. 3.59. " Ad Autolyc. L iii. s. 4.
;
himself among books, and steal hours for study from his neces-
saryrest, spending whole nights in and in conversing
libraries,
with the monuments of the dead. But withal a Gentile, p in-
finitely zealous for his religion, and unreasonably prejudiced
against Christianity, which he cried out of as the highest folly
and madness, and loaded with all the common charges and
calumnies which either the wit or malice of those times had in-
vented to make it odious, and for the defence and vindication
whereof he had bitterly quarrelled with Theophilus. This not-
withstanding, he is not affrighted from undertaking him, but
treats him with all the freedom and ingenuity that became a
fi'iend and a philosopher tells him that the cause was in himself,i
;
whv he did not discern and embrace the truth that his wicked- ;
ness and impieties had depraved his mind, and darkened his
understanding and that men were not to blame the sun for want
;
that God would not discover himself, but to purged and prepared
minds, and such who by innocency and a divine life were become
fit and disposed to receive and entertain him. Then he explains
to him the nature of God, and gives him an account of the origin
of the world according to the Christian doctrine, disproves and
derides the ridiculous deities of the heathens, and particularly
answers those black imputations usually laid upon the Chris-
tians ; and because Autolycus had mainly urged the lateness
and novelty of the Christian faith, he shews at large how much
superior it was in many parts of it in point of seniority, and
that by many ages, to any thing which the heathen religion
could pretend to pressing him at every turn to comply with
:
Alexandria informs us,") that our Jjord\s body was lodged in the
sun, ridiculously interpreting that place," "in them hath he set
a tabernntle for the sun."''' Nor did our Theophilus neglect the
• Ad Autolyc. ii. s. 1.
1. • Hist. I-IccL 1. iv. c. 24.
"In Scriptt. Prophet, eclog. ap. Clem. Alex. s. 56. " Ps. xix. 4.
SAINT THEOPHILUS. 279
weak and younger part of the charge he had not only physic ;
for the sick, and " strong meat for them of full age, but milk for
babes, and such as were yet unskilful in the word of righteous-
ness,""^ composing many catechetic discourses, that contained the
His writings.
BISHOP OF SARDIS.
His countrj' and birth-place. His excellent parts and learning. His being made bishop
of Sardis. His celibacy. His prophetic gifts. The persecution under Marcus Au-
relius. Melito's Apology for the Christians. A fragment of it cited out of Eusebins.
The great advantages of Christianity to the empire. His endeavour to compose the
Paschal controversy. His book concerning that subject. His journey to Jerusalem
to search what books of the Old Testament were received by that church. The copy
of his letter to his brother Onesimus concerning the canon of the Old Testament.
What books admitted by the ancient church. Solomon's Proverbs styled bj- the an-
cients the Book of Wisdom. His death and burial. The great variet}' of his works.
Unjustly suspected of dangerous notions. An account given of the titles of two of his
books most liable to suspicion. His writings enumerated.
Saint Melito was born in Asia, and probably at Sardis, the ine-
trojiolis of Lydia, a great and ancient city, the seat of the
Lydian kings was one of the seven churches to which St.
; it
life, but was more than ordinarily exemplary for his chastity
and sobriety, his self-denial and contempt of the world upon ;
churches, who had ever kept it upon the fourteenth day of the
moon, according to the manner of the Jews. For the quieting
of which contention Melito presently wrote two books "rrepl rov
ndcT'xa, " concerning the Passover," wherein no doubt he treated
at large of the celebration of Easter according to the observation
of the Asian churches, and therefore Polycrates in his letter to
pope Victor particularly reckons Sagaris and Melito among the '
'
Sj-nops. S. Script, vol. iii. p. 12t!.
"' Canu. xxxiii. vol. ii. p. 08.
" I)c Sect. Act. ii. p. 497. vol. i. bibl. Pntruin. ed. lfi-_'4.
" Hiblioth. Siinct. 1. i. p. (J. '• De Script. Keel, in Mclit. ad Ann. 150.
•» Hist. EccL 1. iv. c. 22.
SAINT MELITO. 285
being but two that can be liable to exception, the one TJepX
ivcrcofidrov Geov, de Deo, not Corporeo, (however Theodoret,'
and as it seems from Origen, understands it,) but Corporato (as
Tertullian would express it) de Deo corpore induto, as Rufinus
of old translated it, concerning God clothed with a body, or
" the Word made flesh ;" the other Uepl Kricre(o<; (most copies
read TTio-Tect)?) Kal yevecrea><; Xpicrrov, of the creation and genera-
tion of Christ. Where admit it to have been KTLcreco'?, creation,
Polycrat. Ep. ap. Euseb. 1. v. c. 24. ' Apud Hieron. de Script, in Melit.
'
Thood. Quest, xx. in Genes, vol. i. p. 3*2. " Prov. -snii. 22.
286 THE LIFE OF SAINT MELITO.
dent it is, that before the rise of the Arian controversies the
fathers used the word for any manner of production," and usually
understand that place of Solomon of the ineli'able generation of
the Son of God.
De Veritate.
CATECHIST OF ALEXANDRIA.
The various conjectures concerning his original. The probabilities of his Jewish descent,
what. "Whether bom in Sicily or at Alexandria. His first institution. The fiiraous
Platonic school erected by Ammonius at Alexandria. The renown of that place for
other parts of learning. Pantasnus addicted to the sect of the Stoics. The principles
of that sect shewed to agree best with the dictates of Christianity. His great im-
provements in the Christian doctrine. The catechetic school at Alexandria, with its
antiquity. Pantaenus made regent of it. When he first entered upon this office.
An embassy from India to the bishop of Alexandria for some to preach the Christian
faith. Pantaenus sent upon this errand. This country where situate. His arrival
in India, and converse with the Brachmans. Their temper, principles, and way of
life. Their agreement with the Stoics. Footsteps of Christianity formerly planted
there. St. Matthew's Hebrew Gospel found among them and brought by Pantsenus
to Alexandria. How far and by whom Christianity was propagated in India after-
wards. Pantaenus's return to Alexandria, and resuming his catechetic office. His
death. His great piety and learning.
say some, the last of those whom he had reckoned up,) though
he justly deserved to be placed first, after he had with infinite
diligenceand curiosity hunted him out in Egypt, where he lay
obscure, he satdown under his discipline and institution. This
; ''
person Eusebius plainly supposes to have been our Pantsenus
and that he intended him in the latter clause there is no cause
to doubt, the former only is ambiguous, it not being clear,
^ Stromal. 1. i. c. 1.
'' Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 1 1.
288 THE LIFE OF
wliethor the latter sentence be necessarily connected and joined
to the former, or that he designed any more than to intimate
the last master he addressed to, as distinct from those he had
named before. And this I am the rather inclined to think, be-
cause whoever considerately weighs Clemens's period, will find
that by his Hebrew or Palestine master he means one of the
two whom he heard in the East, whereas Panticnus was his
master in Egypt, whom he both found and heard there. Others
make him born in Sicily,"^ because Clemens, in the following
words, styles him " a truly Sicilian bee :" but whether there
may not be something proverbial in that expression, even as it
him, Benjamin the Jew,^ at his being there, found near twenty-
several schools of Aristotelians, (the only men that then ruled
the chair,) whither men flocked from all parts of the world to
learn the Peripatetic philosophy.
III. Among all the sects of philosophy he pi-incipally applied
himself to the with whose notions and rules of life he
Stoics,''
for human and that there was a wise and powerful Pro-
affairs,
this is the first thing he should look at, whether the thing he is
going about be good or bad, and the part of a good or a wicked
man ; and if excellent and virtuous, that he ought not to let any
loss or damage, torment, or death itself, deter him from it. And
whoever runs over the writings of Seneca, Antoninus, Epictetus,
Arrian, &;c. will find these, and a great many more, claiming a
very near kindred with the main rules of life prescribed in the
« Itiner. p. 106. ed. 1575. f
Euseb. Hist. Eccl. I. v. c. 10.
K Com. in Esai. c. xi. vol iii. p. 101.
VOL. I, V
290 THE LIFE OF
Christian faith. And what wonder if Pantajnns was in love with
such generous and manly principles, which he liked so well, that
as he always retained the title of the Stoic Philosopher, so for
the main he owned the profession of that sect, even after his
being admitted to eminent offices and employments in the Chris-
tian church.
IV. ]3y whom he was instructed in the principles of the
Christian religion, I find not ; Photius tells us,'' that he was
scholar to those who had seen the apostles; though I cannot
allow of what he adds, that he had been an auditor of some of
the apostles themselves, his great distance from their times
rendering it next door to impossible. But whoever were his
tutors, he made such vast proficiencies in his learning, that his
singular eminency quickly recommended him to a place of great
trust and honour in the church, to be master of the catechetic
school at Alexandria. For there were not only academies and
schools of human literature, but an ecclesiastical school for the
training persons up in divine knowledge and the first principles
of Christianity : and this e^ dp-^^aLov eOovi, says Eusebius,' " of
very ancient custom," from the very times of St. Mark, (says
St. Hierom,*") the first planter of Christianity and bishop of that
place : from whose time there had been a constant succession of
catechists in that school, which, Eusebius tells us, continued in
his time, and was managed by men famous for eloquence and
the study of divine things. The fame and glory of Pantrenus
did, above all others at that time, design him for this place, in
which he accordingly succeeded, and that (as Eusebius inti-
mates') about the beginning of Commodus's reign, when Julian
entered upon the see of Alexandria, for about that time (says he)
he became governor of the school of the faithful there. And
whereas others before him had discharged the place in a more
private way, he made the school more open and public, freely
teaching all that addressed themselves to him. In this employ-
ment he continued without intermission the whole time of Julian,
(who sat ten years,) till under his successor he was despatched
upon a long and dangerous journey, whereof this the occasion.
V. Alexandria was TroXuavOpcoTroTdri] iraawv 7r6\t<;, (as the
orator styles it,'") one of the most populous and frequented cities
•^
Cod. CXVIII. '
Hist. Eccl. 1. v. c. 10. ^ De Script, in PanUen.
' Hist. Eccl. 1. V. 0. .0, 10. "" Dion. Chrysost. Onit. xxxii. p. 37.). vid. p. 373.
;
Ibid. 1. iii. c. 6.
u 2
292 THE LIFE OF
scruple comply with, did not EuscLius expressly say,' that
PantiBiius preached the gospel to the Eastern nations, and came
as for as to India itself: a passage, which how it can suit with
the African India, and the countries that lie so directly south of
Egypt, I am not able to imagine. For which reason we have
elsewhere fixed it in the East. Nor is there any need to send
them as far as India intra Ganpem ; there are places in Asia
nearer hand, and particularly some parts of Arabia, that anciently
passed under that name, whence the Persian Gulf is sometimes
called the Indian Sea. But let the judicious reader determine
as he please in this matter.
VI. Being arrived in India, he set himself to plant the Chris-
tian faith in those parts, especially conversing with the Brach-
mans,' the sages and philosophers of those countries, whose prin-
ciples and way of life seemed more immediately to dispose them
for the entertainment of Christianity." Their children as soon
as born they committed to nurses ; and then to guardians, ac-
cording to their different ages, who instructed them in principles
only iipon wild acorns, and such roots as nature furnished them
withal, and quenching their thirst at the next spring or river;
and as sparing of all other lawful pleasures and delights. They
adored no images, but sincerely worshipped God, to whom they
continually prayed and instead of the custom of those Eastern
:
Clem. Alex. Stromat. 1. iii. c. 7. Strab. Geogr. 1. xv. p. 10150. Bardesan. Syr. 1. de fat.
ap. Euseb. PnEp. Evang. 1. vi. c. 10. Plutarch, de vit. Alexand. p. 70l. Porphyr. Hep.
aTrox^js, 1. iv. s. 17, U). Pallad. dc Bragniaii. p. 8, 9, 15, 16, 17. Tract, de Orig. et
Murib. Bracliman. inter Ambrosii oper. ad Calc. vol. v. ed. 15!t5. Snid. in voc. Bpax-
;
to vice and luxury, to trouble and inquietude, and set the mind
upon racks and tenters. They looked upon none of the little
accidents of this world to be either good or evil frequently dis- ;
that after all, or when he drew near to his latter end, he governed
the school of Alexandria : partly from St. Hierom,'' who says
expressly, that he taug-ht in the reigns of Severus and Caracalla,
his first regency being under Commodus. He died in the time
of Antoninus Caracalla, who began his reign anno 211, though
the exact date and manner of his death be lost ; his memory is
upon the holy scripture, and of them not the least fragment is
remaining at this day.
''
De Script, in Pantaen. « Apud Euseb. Hist, Eccl, 1, vi, c. 19,
;
His country. The progress of his studies. His instruction in the Christian doctrine.
His several masters.' His impartial inquiry after truth. The elective sect, what. Its
excellent genius. Clemens of this sect. His succeeding Pantajnus in the catechetic
in that great school of arts and learning. But he stayed not here
his insatiable thirst after knowledsjce made him traverse ahnost
all parts of the world, and converse with the learned of all
the happiness to hear from blessed and truly wortliy and memo-
rable persons, who preserving that sincere and excellent doctrine,
which, like children from the hands of their parents, they had
immediately received from Peter, James, John, and Paul, the
holy apostles, were by God's blessing come down to his time,
sowing those ancient and apostolic seeds of truth: a passage
which I doubt not Eusebius*^ intended, when he says, that
Clemens, speaking concerning himself in the first book of his
did not simply approve all philosophy, but that of which Socrates
in Plato speaks concerning their mysterious rites,
some herbs and flowers in every field and that if the thing be
;
espoused not (says he") this or that philosophy; not the Stoic,
nor the Platonic, nor the Epicurean, or that of Aristotle ; but
whatever any of these sects had said, that was fit and just, that
'
Stromat. I. i. c. 19. ^ Diop. Laert. proiL-iu. ad vit. Pliilos. s. 21.
' Ethic. 1. i, c. 4. '"
Diog. Laert. loc. cilat. " Stromat. 1. i. s. 7.
ST. CLEMENS OF ALEXANDRIA. 299
and then casts in the seed, so the notions he derived out of the
writings of the Gentiles, served first to water and soften to
<yeco8e<; avTcov, the gross and terrestrial parts of the soul, that
the spiritual seed might be the better cast in, and take vital
root in the minds of men. Besides the oflUce of a catechist, he
was made presbyter of the church of Alexandria, and that at
least about the beginning of Severus's reign, for under that ca-
pacity Eusebius takes notice of him, anno 195 about which :
holy Clemens, my master, and one that was greatly useful and
helpful to me."
VL To commend this excellent man after the great things
spoken of him by the ancients, were to hold a candle to the sun.
Let us hear the character which some of them give of him.
" The holy and the blessed Clemens, a very virtuous and ap-
proved," as we have seen Alexander bishop of Jerusalem, who
knew him Indeed his zeal and piety,
best, testifying of him.
modesty and humility, could not but endear him unto all. For
his learning he was, in St. Hierom's judgment,* the most learned
of all the ancients. " A man admirably learned and skilful, and
that searched to the very bottom of all the learning of the
" Ap. Eusel). Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 10. y In Chron. ad Ann. 212.
^ Ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 14.
* Epist. Ixxxiii. ad Magn. Orat. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 666.
302 THE LIFE OF
Greeks with that exactness that perhaps few before him ever
attained to," sajs St. Cyril of Alexandria.'' " An holy man,
have been written in a very wise and excellent order the -^6709 :
''
Contr. Julian. 1. \-ii. vol. vii. p. 231. vid. 1. xi. p. 205. «=
Haeret. Fabiil. 1. i. c. 6.
' Cod. CIX. K Apol. pro Orig. inter 0pp. Ilier. vol. v. p. 2")0.
ST. CLEMENS OF ALEXANDRIA. 303
that are of a more full age ;" a clearer explication of the Chris-
tian doctrine, and a more particular confutation both of Gentile
and heretical opinions, admitting the disciple, after his first pur-
gation and initiation, into a more immediate acquaintance with
the sacred mysteries of religion. His Stromata ''
are nothing but
miscellaneous discourses composed out of the holy writings, and
the books of the Gentiles, explaining and (as occasion is) con-
futing the opinions of the Greeks and Barbarians, the sentiments
of philosophers, the notions of heretics; inserting variety of stories,
and treasures out of all sorts of learning ; which, as himself tells
us,' he therefore styled Stromata, that is, a " variegated contex-
ture of discourses," and which he compares not to a curious
garden,'' wherein the trees and plants are disposed according to
the exactest rules of method and order, but to a thick shady
mountain, whereon trees of all sorts, the cypress and the plantain,
the laurel and the ivy, the apple, the olive, and the fig-tree, pro-
miscuously grow together. In the two former of his books (as
Photius observes ') his style is florid, but set off with a well-pro-
portioned gravity, and a becoming variety of learning : in the
•'
Lib. vii. c. 18. 1 Cod. CIX. >» Stromat. 1. vii. c. 18.
n Ibid. ° Cod. CIX.
1. i. c. 10.
304 LIFE OF ST. CLEMENS OF ALEXANDRIA.
good and pious men of those times, who were continually en-
gaged in fierce disputes with Heathens on the one side, and Jews
and heretics on the other, did not always opdoTOfj-elv, "divide
the truth aright," in some nicer lines and strokes of it. The
Lest is, their great piety and serviccableness in their generations,
while they lived, and the singular usefulness of their writings
to posterity since they are dead, are abundantly enough to
weigh down any little failures or mistakes that dropped from
them.
His Writings.
Extant. Canon Ecclesiasticus, seu Ad versus Ju-
Protrepticon ad Gentes. daizantes.
Paedagogi, Libri tres. De Pascliate.
Stromatewj', Libri octo. De obtrecUitione.
Orat. Quisnam dives ille sit, qui salve- Disputationes de jejunio.
tur. Exhortatio ad Patientiam ad Neophytes.
Epitome doctrinse Orientalis Theodoti, &c.
Supposititious.
His names, wlieiice. His father, who. His education in all kinds of learning. His skill
in the Roman Laws. Different from Tertylian the lawyer. His way of life before
his conversion, inquired into. His married condition. His conversion to Christianity,
when. The great cruelty used towards the Christians. Severus's kindness to them,
Tertullian's excellent apology in their behalf. His address to Scapula, and the ten-
dency of that discourse. Severus's violent persecuting the Christians. His prohibi-
tion of the Heterice. Tertullian's book to the Martyrs, and concerning Patience. His
zeal against heresies, and writings that way. His book De Pallio, when written, and
upon what occasion. His becoming presbyter, when. His book De Corona, and
what the occasion of it. His declining from the Catholic party. Montanus, who and
whence. His principles and practices. Tertullian's owning them, and upon what
occasion. His morose and stubborn temper. How far he complied with the Mon-
tanists,and acknowledged the Paraclete. How he was imposed upon. His writings
against the Catholics, The severity of the ancient discipline, Episcopus Episcojmrum,
in what sense meant by TertuUian concerning the bishop of Rome, His separate
meetings at Carthage, His death. His character. His singular parts and learning.
His books. His phrase and style. What contributed to its perplexedness and ob-
scurity. His unorthodox opinions, A brief plea for him,
VOL. «. X
S06 THE LIFE OF
tullian, a derivative from Tertullus, it is like from his immediate
parent. His father was a soldier, a centurion under the procon-
sul of Africa, (called therefore by St. Hierom and others Centurio
Proconsularis,) not a man of proconsular dignity, as some make
him he was a Gentile, in which religion Tertullian also was
;
and lives of men, its great antiquity, the admirable consent and
truth of the predictions recorded in the books of the Christians,
the frequent testimonies which the heathen deities themselves
gave to its truth and divinity, the ordinary confessions of their
demons, when forced to abandon the persons they had possessed,
^
X 2
308 THE LIFE OF
account, that lie gave thorn an honourable testimony, antl re-
strained the people, when they were raging against the Chris-
tians. This I suppose to have been done at his return fronri the
Parthian expedition, when he found both governors and people
engaged in so hot and severe a persecution of the Christians.
IV. The barbarous and cruel usage which the Christians ge-
nerally met with, engaged Tertullian to vindicate and plead their
cause, botli atjainst the malice and crueltv of their enemies. For
which purpose he published and sent abroad his Apology, dedi-
cating it to the magistrates of the lloraan empire, and especially
the senate at Rome, (for that he went to Kome himself, and
personally presented it to the senate, I confess I see no con-
vincing evidence ;) wherein with incomparable learning and elo-
^ Apol. c. 4. '
L. 14. ff. de Offic. Pracsid. lib. i. Tit 18.
:
TERTULLIAN. S09
the innocent blood that had been shed ; laying before him the
clemency and indulgence of former princes and presidents, yea,
and of the present emperor himself, so great a friend to Chris-
tians a plain evidence that this book was written at this time,
:
was but like the intermitting fits of a fever, which being over,
the paroxysm returns with a fiercer violence Ann. Chr. 202, ;
" Eusek Chron. ad eundem An. " ^1. Spartian. in vit. Sever, c. 17.
° L. i. if. de Offic. Prafect. urb. §. 14. Tit. 12. lib. i.
several heresies which had infested the church till that time
censuring and confuting their absurd opinions, and promising a
more distinct and particular confutation of them afterwards:'"
Avliich accordingly he performed in his discourses against the
those times being generally those who took upon them an ascetic
course of life, and for which reason doubtless the cloak is called
by Tertullian in his dialect, ^ sacerdos suggestus, the priestly
habit. Accordingly Eusebius^ takes notice of him this very
year as becoming famous in the account and esteem of all Chris-
tian churches.
VII. Before Severus left Rome, in order to his Britannic ex-
pedition, were solemnized the Decennalia of Antoninus Caracalla,
when besides many magnificent sports and shows, and a largess
bestowed upon the people, the emperor gave a donative to the
soldiers, which every one that received, was to come up to the
tribune with a laurel crown upon his head among the rest there :
was one a Christian," who brought his crown along with him in his
hand, and being asked the reason why like others he wore it
not upon his head? answered, he could not, for that he was a
bade all second marriages called Pepuza and Tymium, two little
;
inquire,
IX. Allured with the smooth and specious pretences of this
K Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 20. i. ii. f. 2.5. Ilicron. dc Script, in Cnio. *<
De Jejun. c. 1.
TERTULLIAN. 315
• TertuU. dc Pudicit. c. 1.
TERTULLIAN. 317
" Concil. Cartli. ap. Cypr. p. 229. " August, de Haeres. c. 8fi. vol. viii. p. 24.
and capacity of mind had drawn all philosophy, and its several
sects, the authors and abettors of heresies with all their rites
and principles, and the whole circumference of history and all
kind of study, within the compass of his own breast. A man of
such quick and weighty parts, that there was scarce any thing
which he set himself against, which he did not either pierce
through with the acumen of his wit, or batter down with the
strength and solidity of his arguments. Who can sufficiently
commend his discourses, so thick set with troops of reasons,
that whom
they cannot persuade, they are ready to force to an
assent? who hath almost as many sentences as words, and not
more periods than victories over those whom he hath to deal
with."
XIIL Forhis books, though time has devoured many, yet a
great number still remain, and some of them written after his
withdrawment from the church. His style is for the most part
abrupt and haughty, and its face full of ancient wrinkles, of
which Lactantius^ long since gave this censure: that though he
himself was skilled in all points of learning, yet his st^le was
rugged and uneasy, and very obscure ; as indeed it requires a
very attentive and diligent, a sharp and sagacious understand-
ing ; yet is it lofty and masculine, and carries a kind of majestic
eloquence along with it, that gives a pleasant relish to the ju-
P De Script, in TertiiU. i Kpist. Ixxxiii. ad Magn. Orat. vol. iv. par. ii. p. ().5G.
*
Commonit. adv. H.xrcs. c. 24. » Lil). v. cap. 1.
;
TERTULLIAN. 319
could not but exceedingly vitiate and infect his native style, and
render it less smooth, elegant, and delightful as we see in Am- ;
'
De Baptism, c. 15. De Coron. c. 6.
320 THE LIFE OF TERTULLIAN.
His Writings.
Genuine. Libri post Lapsum in Montanismum scripti.
De Corona.
Siipposititious.
De Pallio.
De Pffiiiitentia.
Poemata.
De Patientia. Genesis.
De cultn freininanim, Lihri duo. Sodoma.
Ad Uxorem, Libri duo.
Not Extant.
De Virginibus Velandis.
De Paradiso.
Adversus Judaeos.
De Spe Fidelium.
De Priescriptione Haereticorum.
De Ecstiisi.
De Baptismo.
Adversus Apollonium.
Adversus Hermogenem.
Adversus Apellecianos.
Adversus Valentinianos,
De Vestibus Aaron.
De Anima. De Censu Animje.
De Came Christi,
De Resurrectione Camis. Grace.
Origen, where and when bom. Several conjectures about the original of his name. His
father, who. His juvenile education, and great towardliness in the knowledge of
the scriptures. His philosophical studies under Clemens Alexandrinus. His in-
stitution under Ammonius. Ammonius, who. His fame and excellency confessed by
the Gentile philosophers. Another Origen, his contemporary. These two heedlessly
confounded. His father's martyrdom, and the confiscation of his estate. Origen's re-
solute encouragement of his father. His own passionate desire of martyrdom. His
maintenance by an honourable matron of Alexandria. His zeal against lieretics. His
setting up a private His succeeding Clemens in the catechetic school at
school.
eighteen years of age. The frequency of his auditors. Many of them martyrs for
the faith. Origen's resolution in attending upon the martyrs. His danger. His
courageous act at the temple of Serapis. His emasculating himself, and the reasons of
it. The eminent chastity of those primitive times. Origen's journey to Rome, and
return to Alexandria. His taking in a colleague into the catechetic office. His
learning the Hebrew tongue. The prudent method of his teaching. Ambrosius con-
verted. Who His great intimacy with Origen. Origen sent for by the
he was.
governor of Arabia. His journey into Palestine, and teaching at Caesarea. Remanded
by the bishop of Alexandria, Alexander Severus, his excellent virtues, and kindness
for the Christian religion. Origen sent for by the empress Mammaea to Antioch.
He begins to write his Commentaries. How many notaries and transcribers employed,
and by whom maintained. Notaries, their original and office : their use and institution
in the primitive church. His journey into Greece. His passage through Palestine,
and being ordained presbyter at Caesarea. Demetrius of Alexandria, his envy and
rage against him. Origen condemned in two synods at Alexandria, and one at Rome.
The resignation of his catechetic school to Heraclas. Heraclas, who. The story of
his oifering sacrifice. The credit of this story questioned, and why. His departure
from Alexandria, and fixing at Caesarea. The eminency of his school there. Gregorius
Thaumaturgus, his scholar. His friendship with Firmilian. Firmilian, who. The per-
secution under Maximinus. Origen's book written to the martyrs. His retirement,
whither. His comparing the versions of the Bible. His Tetrapla, Hexapla, and
Octapla, what, and how managed : a specimen given of them. His second journey to
Athens. His going to Nicomedia, and letter to Africanus about the History of Su-
sanna. His confutation of Beryllus in Arabia. His answer to Celsus. Celsus, who.
Origen's letters to Philip the emperor. The vanity of making him a Christian.
Origen's journey into Arabia to refute heresies. The Helcesaitae, who : what
their principles. Alexander's miraculous election to the see of Jerusalem ; his
VOL. I. Y
322 THE LIFE OF
Tyre under the Decian persecution. His deliverance out of prison age and :
at
death. His character. His strict life. His mighty zeal, abstinence, contempt of the
learning. His books, and their several classes. His style, what. His unsound
opinions. The great outcry against him in all ages. The apologies written in his
behalf. Several things noted out of the ancients to extenuate the charge. His asser-
tions not dogmatical. Not intended for public ^^ew. Generally such as were not
determined by the church. His books corrupted, and by whom. His own complaints
to that purpose. The testimonies of Athanasius, and Theotimus, and Haymo. in his
them. His great kindness for the Platonic principles. St. Hieronvs moderate censure
of him. His repenting of his rash propositions. His writings enumerated, and what
now extant.
tains. and the last, I dare say, that ever made that
The first
mancled its own entertainment, did not one prejudice lie against
it, that we can hardly conceive so good a man, and so severe a
Christian as Origen''s father, would impose aname upon his child
for which he must be beholden to an heathen deity, and whom
he might see every day worshipped with the most sottish
idolatry, that he should let him perpetually carry about that re-
membrance of pagan idolatry in his name, which they so par-
ticularly and so solemnly renounced in their baptism. But to
return.
II. He was born about the year of our Lord 186, being se-
venteen years of age at his father's death,'' who suffered Ann.
Chr. 202, Severi 10. His father was Leonides, whom Suidas^
and some others (without any authority, that I know of, from
the ancients) make a bishop to be sure he was a good man, :
y2
324. THE LIFE OF
happy he was in so excellent a son. So great a comfort, so in-
others a person
; of that learning and accurate judgment, that
coming one day into Plotinus's school," the grave philosopher
was ashamed, and would have given place and when entreated :
" Annal. vol. i. p. 332. vid. etiam Selden. not. in Eutych. sect. 23.
1. vi. c. 19.
P Lib. wepl TfXovs apud Porphyr. in vit. Plotin. '^ Ibid.
f
Lib. de Provid. et fat. ap. Phot. Cod. CCXIV. » In vit. Porphyr. p. 19.
sir, that for our sakes you do not change your mind." And
himself had gone, not only to prison, but to the very block with
his father, if the divine providence had not interposed. His
mother perceiving his resolutions, treated him with all the charms
and endearments of so afi'ectionate a relation, attempted him
with prayers and tears, entreating him, if not for his own, that
at least for her sake, and his nearest relatives, he would spare
himself: all which not prevailing, especially after his father's
apprehension, she was forced to betake herself to little arts,
hiding all his clothes, that mere shame might confine him to the
house : a mighty instance, as the historian notes, of a juvenile
forwardncs::< and maturity, and a most hearty aftectiou for the
true religion.
<=
Ibid. c. 3. • Ibid.
328 THE LIFE OF
less we understand it of some private and particular school,
will
distinctfrom the ordinary catechetic school, till Clemens's death,
whose successor the ancients generally make him. Scholars in
very great numbers daily crowded in upon him, so that finding
he had enough to do, and that his different employments did not
M-ell consist together, he left off teaching the arts and sciences,
not only built up those who were already Christians, but gained
over a great number of Gentile philosophers to the faith," who
embraced Christianity with so hearty and sincere a mind, as
readily to seal it with their blood. Among which of most note
were Plutarch, whom Origen attending to his martyrdom was
have been killed by the people for being the author of his
like to
conversion Serenus, who was burnt for his religion, Heraclides
;
had endured infinite torments, lost his head, and gained a crown.
Nay, the weaker sex also put in for a share one Herais, a cate-:
'
Ad Panimach. et Ocean, de Error. Orig. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 846.
''
Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 8. ' Matt. xix. 12, "" Apolog, i. e, 29.
330 THE LIFE OF
to Felix the president of Alexandria, desiring his leave that the
physicians niiiiflit make him an eunuch, which the president
refused, as piohibited by the laws of the Roman empire ; as it
in the prime of his age, and the flower of more pleasing and
delightful studies, no doubt very difficult and uneasy. But no-
thing is hard to an industrious diligence, and a willing mind.
X. Nor did his pains in this interrupt his activity in his other
employments where he perceived any of his scholars of more
;
' r>pist. ap. Suid. ubi supr. Vid. Hieron. Ep. xlv. ad Marcell. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 552.
:
where his excellent abilities being soon taken notice of, he was
requested by the bishops of those parts, though but then in the
capacity of a laic, publicly in the church, and before themselves,
to expound the scriptures to the people. The news hereof was
presently carried to Alexandria, and highly resented by Deme-
trius, who by letters expostulated the case with Theoctistus,
bishop of Cffisarea, and Alexander of Jerusalem, as a thing
never heard of before in the Christian church who in their ;
answer put him in mind, that this had been no such unusual
thing, whereof they give him particular instances. All which
satisfied notDemetrius, who by letters commanded Origen to
return, and sent deacons on purpose to urge him to it, where-
upon he came back and applied himself to his wonted charge.
XII. Alexander Severus, the present emperor, in order to his
expedition against the Persians, was come to Antioch, attended
with his mother Maramaea, a wise and prudent, and (says Eu-
sebius ) a most pious and religious princess ; a great influence
she had upon her son, whom she engaged in a most strict and
constant administration of justice, and the affairs of the empire,
that he might have no leisure to be debauched by vice and
" Hieron.de Script, in Ambros. ' Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 19.
was, for which the whole world had him in such veneration.
And for this purpose she sent for him, ordering a military guard
to conduct him to Antioch, where he stayed some considerable
time ; and having fully opened the doctrines of our religion, and
given her many demonstrations of the faith of Christians, to the
great honour of God and of religion, he was dismissed, and per-
mitted to return to his old charge at Alexandria.
Xni. Henceforward he set upon writing commentaries on
the holy scripture," at the instigation of his dear friend Am-
brosius, who did not only earnestly importune him to it, but
furnish him with all conveniences necessary for it ; allow-
ing him, besides his maintenance, seven (and, as occasion
was, more) notaries to attend upon him, who by turns might
take from his mouth what he dictated to them and as many ;
ORIGEN. 835
P Euscb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 8. i Pami.hil. Apolog. ap. Phot. Cod. CXVIII.
Apud Rufin. Invect. ii. in Hieron. inter opp. Ilier. vol. v. p. 290.
• Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 26.
;
ORIOEN. 337
his flight with more shame and sorrow than all the malice of his
bitterest enemies could create him. Thus then we are told,"
some Gentiles that were his mortal enemies, seized upon him,
and reduced him to this strait, that either he should abuse his
body with a Blackamoor, or do sacrifice to an idol. Of the two
he chose to sacrifice, though it was rather their act than his, for
putting frankincense into his hand, they led him up to the altar,
and forced him to throw it into the fire which yet drew so :
great a blot upon his name, and derived so much guilt upon his
conscience, that not able to bear the public reproach, he im-
mediately left the city. The credit of this story is not a little
shaken by the universal silence of the more ancient writers In
this matter, not so much as intimated by Eusebius, Pamphilus,
or Origen^s own contemporary, DIonysIus of Alexandria; not
objected by his greatest adversaries, as Is plain from the Apolo-
VOL. I, Z
338 THE LIFE OF
and besides liim, not by any else of that timo, not St. IHerom,
llufinus, Vinccntins Lcrinensis, or Tlicoj)]iilu8 of Alexandria,
some of whom were enemies enough to Origen. So that it was
not without some plausibility of reason that Jiaronius suspected
this passage to have been foisted into Epiphanius,^ and not to
have been the genuine issue of liis pen. Though in my mind
Epiphanius himself says enough to make any wise man ready to
suspend his belief; for he tells us/ that many strange things
story from hence, that this being a long time after his famous
emasculating of himself, which by this time was known all
ORTGEN. 889
the story be true, that this lamentation were not genuine ; but
as it is, the best ground it has to support itself, is, that it is
name quickly procured him scholars from all parts, not only of
the country thereabouts, but from the remotest provinces:
among which, of most remark, were Gregory, called afterwards
Thaumaturgus, and his brother Athenodorus, who leaving the
study of the law, as being more delighted with philosophy and
human arts, committed themselves to his conduct and tutorage,
who first instructed them in philosophy, and then trained them
up to a more accurate knowledge of the Christian faith. Five
years they remained under his discipline, when being sufficiently
of great name and note, and who held correspondence with most
of the eminent men of those times few considerable affairs of:
•»
Extat inter 0pp. Orig. vol. i. p. 752. edit. Erasni.
c
Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 30. ''
Id ibid. c. 27.
z 2
340 THE LIFE OF
the church, wherein he was not concerned either hy his presence
ORIGEN. 841
that these two last were not complete and entire translations,
but contained only some parts of the Old Testament, especially
the prophetical books. But whether from hence we may con-
clude the Hexapla and the Octapla to have been but one and
the same work, only receiving its diiferent title according to
those parts that had these two last versions annexed to them, I
will not say. Besides these there was a seventh edition ; but
•"
Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 16. Epiph. Haeres. Ixiv. b. 3. De pond, et mensur. b. 7. 19.
OCTAPLA
344 THE LIFE OF
And to make
work more complete and nscful, he distin-
the
guished the additions and deficiencies by several marks,"' where
any thing had been added by the Soptuagint, besides the faith
of the original text, he prefixed an obelus before it where any ;
the loss whereof I can attribute to nothing more than the pains
and charge, the trouble and difficulty of transcribing it. Though
Bome part of it, viz. the Septuagint, was taken out, and published
more exact and correct from the faults which had crept into it
by transcribing, by Eusebius and Pamj^hilus afterwards. It was
a work of time, and not finished by Origen all at once begun ;
Ambrosius, who, with his wife and children, at that time resided
there. While he continued here (which was not long) he re-
turned an answer to the letter which he had lately received from
Julius Africanus, concerning the history of Susanna ; which
" ViJ. praetor script citat. Orig. Comni. in Matt. toni. xv. s. 1 4. ct Kpist. ad African.
B. 4. vol. i. p. IG. Vid. Riifin. Tnvect. ii. in Ilieron. inter opp. liicr. vol. v. p. 298.
" Comni. in Tit. iii. vol. iv. par. i. p. 437.
" Euscb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 32.
ORIGEN. 345
quested, who went thither, and treated with him both in private
conferences and in public synods. His greatest difficulty was to
know what the man meant, which, when he had once found out,
he plied him so hard with cogent reasonings and demonstrations,
that he was forced to let go his hold, recant his errors, and return
back into the way of truth which done, Origen took his leave,
:
ORIGEN. 347
and a body
inflict: which, meeting with a person of his age,
broken with such and so many cares and labours, must needs
render it a very heavy burden. And yet he bore all with a
generous patience, and was ready to submit to the last fatal
stroke, but that the judge, to give all possible accents to his
misery, ordered them so to torment him, that they should not
kill him.
XXIII. Human councils and resolutions, when most active
and violent, yet " he that is higher than the highest " can over-
rule them, and " there be that are higher than they." His enemies
had hitherto exercised him only with preparatory cruelties, re-
serving him for a more solemn execution. But God, " to whom
belongs the issues from death," prevented their malice, and made
way for him to escape, which in all probability was effected by
the death of Decius, who was cut oiF, when he had reigned two
years and a half. Being delivered out of prison, he improved his
time to pious purposes,*^ comforting the weak and the disconsolate,
and writing letters to that end up and down the world. Some
few years he out-lived the Decian persecution, and died at Tyre,
about the first year of Valerian. Indeed, Eusebius intimates
that he departed this life about the beginning of Gallus's reign.
But I cannot see how that can stand for seeing elsewhere, he :
being sixty-nine years old died, and was buried at Tyre which, :
discourses were, such were his manners, and his life the image of
his mind that wise and good man, whom he was wont to de-
:
scribe in his lectures to his scholai'S, (as one of the most eminent
of them assure' us,"') he himself had first formed, and drawn in
the example of his own life. He had a mighty regard to the
glory of God, and the good of souls, whose happiness he studied
by all ways to promote, and thought nothing hard, nothing
mean or servile, that might advance it. He was modest and
humble, chaste and temperate so exemplary his abstinence and
:
sobriety, that he lived upon what was next door to nothing for ;
many years abstaining from wine," and every thing bat what
was absolutely necessary for the support of life, till by too much
abstinence he had almost ruined his health, and endangered the
weakening of nature past recovery. Singular his contempt of
the world, literally making good that precept of our Lord to his
disciples, not to have " two cloaks," to provide " no shoes," nor
to be anxiously careful for to-morrow. When many, out of con-
sideration of his unwearied diligence, would have communicated
''
Cotovic. itiner. 1. i.e. 19. ' Descript. Terr. Sanct. c. 2.
''
Guiliel. Tyr. II. sacr. 1. xiii. non longe ab init. vid. etiam Adricom. Thcatr. Terr. S.
in Trib. Aser. n. 84. in fin.
' Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 3.
part of what they had towards his necessities, he would not, but,
rather than be needlessly burdensome to any, sold his library,
agreeing with the buyer to allow him four ohol% or five pence,
for his daily maintenance. His diligence in study, in preaching,
writing, travelling, confuting heathens and heretics, composing
schisms and differences in the church, was indefatigable ; upon
which account the titles of Adamantius and Ohalcenterus are
supposed by the ancients to have been given to him, nothing but
an industry of brass and iron being able to hold out under such
infinite labours. The day he spent part in fasting, part in other
religious exercises and employments ; the night he bestowed
upon the study of the scripture, reserving some little portion for
sleep and rest, which he usually took, not in bed, but upon the
bare ground. This admirably exercised and advanced his pa-
tience, which he improved by further austerities fasting, and;
and when the Greeks could lead him no further, with an un-
o Dc script, in Orig. p In Orig. i Contr. Hseres. c. 23,
352 THE LIFE OF
paralleled Industry he conquered the languageand learning of
the Jews. need be given him than what
]3ut no other character
Porphyry/ who knew him, (though a learned man/ who from
that passage in Eusebius makes him to have been his scholar,
proceeds doubtless upon a great mistake,) and was an enemy,
bestows upon him, that he was held in very great esteem in
those times, and had purchased a more than ordinary glory and
renown from the greatest masters which Christianity then had
in the world, and that under the discipline of Ammonius he
attained to an admirable skill in learning and philosophj'. The
monuments and evidences whereof (as he there observes) were
the books and writings which he left behind him, considerable
not for their subjects only, but their multitude, arising to that
vast number, that Epiphanius tells us,* it was commonly re-
ported that he wrote six thousand volumes : the greatest part of
which being understood of epistles, and single homilies, the
accoimt will not be above belief, nor give any just foundation
for Rufinus and St. Hierom to wrangle so much about it, the
latter of whom point-blank denies, that ever himself read, or
that Origen himself wrote so many. Vincentius affirms," that
no man ever wrote so much as he, and that all his books could
not only not be read, but not so by any. much as be found out
So that was not without reason that antiquity fastened the
it
whereof, though they have long since perished through the care-
lessness and ill will of succeeding times, yet does a very large
portion of them still remain. His phrase and way of writing is
clear and unaffected, fluent and copious. Erasmus^' gives a high
encomium of it, preferring it before most other writers of the
church, that it is neither turgid and lofty, like that of St. Hilary,
flying above the reach of ordinary readers ; nor set off" with
' Ap. Euscb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. If). » L. Ilolsten. dc vit. et script. Porphyr. c. G.
• Ilaeres. Ixiv. s. G3. vid. Ilufin. Apol. pro Orig. inter 0pp. Hier. vol. v. p. 254.
" Contr, Ilaeres. c. 23. " Censur. de Open Orig.
;
ORIGEN. S53
453_
» Contr. Hajres. c. 23.
VOL. I.
2 A
354 THE LIFE OF
Was pursiiecl witli a mighty clamour and fierceness, especially
by Methodius bishop of Olympus, Eustathius of Antioch, Apol-
linaris, Theophilus of Alexandria, and Epiphanius; and the cry
than the rules of faith did strictly allow. Secondly, those books
of his,' wherein he betrays the most unsound and unwarrautable
notions, were written privately, and with no intention of being
made public, but as secrets communicable among friends, and
not as doctrines to disturb the church. And this he freely ac-
knowledged in his letter to Fabian bishop of Rome,** and cast
the blame upon his friend Ambrosius, quod secreto edita in pub-
licum protulerit, that he had published those things which he
h Cod. CXVII. ' Pamph. Apol. ap. Hier. vol. v. p. 223. 227.
^ Ap. Hieron. in. Epist. xli. ad Pammach. de err. Orig. vol. iv. par. ii. p. 347.
2 A 2
356 THE LIFE OF
meant should go no further than the breasts or liands of his
' Praef. ad lib. Tlepl apx- s. 2. ™ Epist. xli. ad Pammach. ubi supr.
Apol. pro Orig. apiul Ilicr. vol. v. p. 249, 250, etc. et Prnet ad lib. Tltpl apx- ibid.
p. 254.
• Ap. Euscb. Hist. Eccl. 1. iv. c. 23. p Cod, CXVII.
;
ORIGEN. 357
1 Apol. Rufin. pro Orig. ap. Hier. vol. v. p. 251. ' Ibid. p. 249.
• Athanas. de Decret. Synod. Nic. s. 27. Vid. Qusest. Ixxii. ad Antioch. vol. ii. p. 284^
inter Spuria, et Socr, Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 13.
:
all his works, but only that concerning the duration of future
Others, hoth Greeks and Latins, have erred in the faith as well
as he, whom it is not necessary to name, lest we might seem to
defend him, not by his own merit, but by the mistakes of other
men.'" To all that has been hitherto said, I may add this, that
suppose him guilty of as pestilent and dangerous errors as the
worst of his enemies lay to his charge, yet he afterwards re-
pented of what he had rashly and unadvisedly written, as appears
by his epistle to Fabian, bishop of Home.'' And is it not in-
tolerable rudeness and incivility at least, perpetually to upbraid
and reproach a man with the faults of his past life, and which
he himself has disowned ? Soitow for what is past in some
measure repairs the breach, and repentance must be allowed
next door to innocence.
a Horat. de Art. Poet. v. 359, 360.
^ Ap. Hier. vol. iv. par. ii. vid. Rufin. Invect. i. p. 349. in Hieron. inter opp. Ilier.
vol. V. p. 282. Primus fclicitatis gradus est, non delinqucre: secuiulus, dclicta cognosccre.
Illic currit innocentia Integra et illibata quae servet, hie succedit medela qua; sanet. Cypt.
Ep. lix. ad ComeL p. 135.
His writings mentioned by tlie ancients, and which of them extant at this day.
Homilianim mysticarum in Genes, libri duo. Extant Latine in Psalm xxxvi. Homiliae
Comraentar. in Genes, libri 13. quinque ; in Psalm xxxvii. Homiliae
Extant Latine Homiliae 17. dute ; in Psalm x.xx\-iii. Homiliae
Commentar. Tomi in Exodum. duae.
Extant Latino Homiliae 12. In Proverbia Salora. Comraentar.
Scholia in Leviticum. Explicatio Ecclesiastis.
Extant Homiliae 16. In Canticum Cantic. Commentarii.
In Numeros ext^int Latine Homiliae 28. Extant Latine Homilia; duaj.
In Deuteronomiiim Homiliae. i CommenUir. libri 30.
In Libr. Jesu Nave extant Homiliae 26, In Esaiam < Ilomilice 25.
Latine. ( Scholia.
In Libr. Judicum extant Homiliae 9, Latine. Extant Latine Homiliae 9.
ORIGEN. 361
Comment, libri 25, Contra Celsum libri octo, extant Gr. Lat.
! Homilise 25. De Martyrio. Extant Gr. Lat.
Scholia. Homil. de Engastrimytho. Extant Gr. Lat.
Extant Gr. Lat. tomi septem. De Oratione. Extant Gr. MS.
In Lucam Commentar. tomi quinque. Philocalia de aliquot praecipuis Theologiae
Extant Latine Horailiae 39. locis et quaestlonibus ex Origenis scrip-
His originals obscure. His education and accomplishments inquired into. Made bishop
of Antioch, when. Antioeli taken by the king of Persia. Recovered by the Roman
cmjieror. Babylas's fidelity in his charge. The Decian persecution, and the grounds
of it : severely urged by the cnipcror''8 edicts. Dccius's coming to Antioch. His
attempt to break into the Christian congregation. Babylas's bold resistance. This
applied to Nunierianus, and the ground of the niisUike. The like reported of Philip
the emperor. Decius's bloody act related by St. Chrysostora. His rage against
l^abylas, and his examination of him. The martyr's resolute answer. His imprison-
ment and hard usage. The different accounts concerning his dcatli. Three youths, his
fellow-sufferers, in vain attempted by the emperor. Their martyrdom first, and why.
Babylas beheaded. His command that his cliains should be buried with him. The
translation of his body under Constantius. The great sweetness and pleasantness of
the Daphne. Apollo's temple there. St. Babylas's bones translated thither by
Gallus Ca'sar. The oracle immediately rendered dumb. In vjiin consulted by Julian.
The confession of the Demon. Julian's command for removing Babylas's bones. The
martyr's remains triumphantly carried into the city. The credit of this Story suffi-
ciently attested. The thing owiied by Libanius and Julian. Why such honour
suffered to be done to the martyr. Julian afraid of an immediate vengeance. His
persecution .against the Christians at Antioch. The sufferings of Thcodorus. The
temple of Apollo fired from heaven.
both to feed and preserve the flock of God, to resist and convince
gainsayers, and to defend Christianity against the attempts both
of secret and open enemies. For as the Christian church never
wanted professed adversaries from without, who endeavoured,
both by sword and pen, to stifle and suppress its growth, nor
though he was a Christian, yet St. Babylas would not admit him
or his wife into the church for which affront, offered to so
;
whom this young prince was murdered, and St. Babylas put to
death, which could be no other than Decius who, with hands ;
tatize from the service of the true God and sacrifice to devils,
and those who falsely usurped the name and honour of deities.
The emperor finding his resolutions firm and inflexible, gave
order that chains and fetters should be clapped upon him, with
which he was sent to prison, where he endured many severe
"' Olmyp. 257. 4. Decii 1. Indict. 14. p. 630. vid. ibid. p. 628.
" Philost. Hist. Eccl. 1. vii. c. 8. et Suid. in voc. Ba;8uAaj.
368 THE LIFE OF
hardships and sufferings," but yet rejoiced in his bonds, and Avas
more troubled at the misery that attended him that sent him
thither, than at the weight of his own chains, or the sharpness
of those torments that were heaped upon him. So naturally
does Christianity teach us, " to bless them that curse us, to pray
for them that despitefully use and persecute us," and " to over-
come evil with good."
VIT. There is some little difference in the accounts of the
ancients, concerning the manner of hismartyrdom. Eusebius^
and some others make him, after a famous confession, to die in
prison ; while Chrysostom,'' (whom I rather incline to believe in
this matter, as more capable to know the traditions and examine
the records of that church) and Suidas affirm, that, being bound,
he was led forth out of prison to undergo his martyrdom, the one
plainly intimating, the other positively expressing it, that he was
beheaded. The fatal sentence being passed, as he was led to
execution, he began his song of triumph, " Return unto thy rest,
O my soul, for the Lord hath dealt bountifully with me." To-
gether with him were led along three youths, brothers, (whose
names, the lloman Martyrology tells us,"' were Urbanus, Prili-
° Chrysost. lib. de S. Babyl. s. 10. vol. ii. p. 5.52. Martyr. Rom. ad Januar. 24.
P Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 39. i Lib. de S. Babj'l. s. 11. voL ii. p. 554.
"
Ad Jan. 24. » Chrysost. Suid. Martyr. Rom. iibi supra.
;
the great St. Paul, who took pleasure in bonds, chains, imprison-
ments, reproaches, professing to rejoice and glory in nothing so
much and in the cross of Christ. Accord-
as in his sufferings,
ingly his chains were laid up with him in the grave, where
Chrysostom assures us they remained in his time.
VIII. Where his body was first buried, we are not told but ;
shady walks ; the trees, joining their bushy heads, forbad the
approaches of the sun to annoy and scorch them ; watered with
plenty of chrystal fountains and pleasant rivulets, the air cool
and temperate, and the wind playing within the boughs of the
trees,added a natural harmony and delightful murmur. It was
the usual scene of the poets'* amorous and wanton fancies, and
VOL. I. - B
370 THE LIFE. OF
which he thought he could not more effectually compass than
by building a church over against Apollo's temple which was ;
looked upon as the effect only of neglect," that the sullen Demon
would not answer, because he had not his usual tribute of sacri-
fices, incense, and other ritual honours paid to
him but was ;
city, Avith the most solemn triumph, singing psalms of joy all
the way they went and at the end of every period, adding this
;
« Chrj'sost. Horn, de S. Babyl. s. 2. vol. iii. p. 5,33. et lib. de S. Babyl. s. 15. p. 560, etc.
Sozom. Niceph. ubi Bupr. Socrat. 1. iii. c. 18. Theodor. Hist Eccl. 1. iii. c, 10, Conf. Philost
thing, but wrote a discourse against the Gentiles, upon this very
subject, wherein he appeals to the knowledge both of young and
old then alive,'' who had seen it, and challenges them to stand
up and contradict, if they could, the truth of what he related.
Nay, which further puts the case past all peradventure, Libanius
the orator evidently confesses it," when he tells us, that Apollo
Daphnseus, though before neglected and forgotten, yet, when
Julian came with sacrifices and oblations to kiss his foot, he ap-
peared again rites of worship, after that he had been
in his
freed from the unwelcome neighbourhood of a certain dead man,
who lay hard by, to his great trouble and disturbance. And
Julian himself tells the Christians,'' that he had sent back tov
veKpov T?7? Ad(f)V7]<;, " their dead man that had been buried in
Daphne." Nor is it improbable that God should suffer such an
extraordinary passage to happen, especially at this time, to
demonstrate the vanity of the Gentile religion, to correct the
and to give testimony to that religion,
infidelity of the emperor,
which he scorned with so much insolence and sarcasm, and
pursued with so much vigour and opposition. If any inquire
why Julian should so far gratify the Christians, as to bestow the
martyr's bones upon them, and suffer them to convey them with
so much pomp and honour into the city, and not rather scatter
the ashes into the throw them into the fire, or drown the
air,
was afraid lest the divine vengeance should overtake him, lest
a thunderbolt from heaven should strike him, or an incurable
disease arrest him, as such kind of miserable fates had overtaken
some of his predecessors, in the height of their activity against
the Christians and he had lately seen sad instances of it that
;
came very near him: his uncle Julian, prefect of the East, a
petulant scorner and apostate derider of Christians, who, having
2 B 2
;
were racked to make them say so, yet could they not be brought
to affirm any more, than that it was fired by a light from heaven.
This conflagration is mentioned not only by Christian writers,
but by Ammianus Marcellinus,*^ and by Julian himself,^ but es-
pecially by Libanius the orator, who in an oration on purpose
made to the people, elegantly bewails its unhappy fate whose ;
His birth-place. The nobility of his family exploded. The confounding him with
another Cyprian, bishop of Antioch. These two vastly distinct. St. Cyprian's edu-
Cfficilius. Their mutual endeannent. His great charity to the poor. His baptism.
Made presbyter, and bishop of Carthage. His modest declining the honour. His
proscription, recess, and care of his church during that retirement. The case of the
Lapsed A brief account of the rise of the Novatian sect. The fierceness of the
persecution at Carthage under Decius. The courage and patience of the Christians.
Cyprian's return. A sj-nod at Carthage about the case of the Lapsed, and the cause
of Novatian. Their detennination of these matters. Ratified by a synod at Rome
and another at Antioch. A second sjmod about the same affair. l^Ioderation in the
ecclesiastic discipline used in the time of persecution. The great pestilence at Carthage.
The miserable state of that city. The mighty charity of St. Cyprian and the Chris-
tians at that time. These evils charged upon the Christians. St. Cyprian's vindica-
tion of them. The time of baptizing infants detcnnined in a sjTiod. Another sjTiod
to decide the case of the Spanish bishops that had lapsed in the time of persecution.
The controversy concerning the rebaptizing those who had been baptized by heretics.
This resolved upon in a synod of eigthy-seven African bishops. The innnodcrate heats
between Cyprian, Firmilian, and Stephen bishop of Rome, about this matter. Cyprian
arraigned before the proconsul. His resolute carriage. His banishment to Cunibis.
His martyrdom foretold him by a \-ision. His letters during his exile. The severe usage
of the Christians. His withdrawment, and why. His apprehension, and examination
before the proconsul. The sentence passed upon him. His martyrdom, and place of
burial. His piety, fidelity, chastity, humility, modesty, charity, kv. His natural
parts. His learning, wherein it mainly consisted. The politeness and elegancy of his
Btyle. His quick proficiency in Christian studies. His frequent converse with Ter-
tullian's writings. His books. The excellency of those ascribed to him. The great
honours done to his memory.
part of his life he passed among the errors of the Gentile reli-
gion, and was at least upon the borders of old age when he was
rescued from the vassalage of inveterate customs, the dark-
ness of idolatrj^ and the errors and vices of his past life, as him-
self intimates in his epistle to Donatus.^ He was converted to
Christianity by the arguments and importunities of Csecilius a
presbyter of Carthage,'' a person whom ever after he loved as a
friend, and reverenced as a father and so mutual an endear-
:
him his executor, and committed his wife and children to his
sole care and tutelage. Being yet a catechumen,' he gave early
instances of a great and generous piety professed a strict and ;
the world, and exercising that great duty of mercy and charity,
which God values above all the ritual devotions in the world.
So that by the speedy progress of his piety, (says Pontius, his
friend and deacon,) he became ahnost a perfect Christian, before
he had learnt the rules of Christianity.
in. Being fully instructed in the rudiments of the Christian
faith, he was baptized;"* when the mighty assistances which he
the mercy and pardon of God, (for they left them to the sentence
of the divine tribunal,) but maintained that the church had no
power to absolve them that once laj^sed after baptism, and to
receive them again into communion. Having sufficiently em-
broiled the church at home, (where he was in danger to be
excommunicated by Cyprian for his scandalous, irregular, and
nnpeaceable practices,) over he goes, with some of his party, to
Home where, by a pretence of uncommon sanctity and severity,
;
and Stephanas were arrived from Rome, and brought a true ac-
count and relation of the case. The synod therefore advised and
charged them to desist from their turbulent and schismatical pro-
ceedings, not to rend the church by propagating a pernicious Ac-
tion ; that it was their best way, and the safest counsel they could
one trembled, and fled, and shifted for himself, deserted his
dearest friends and nearest relations none considered what
;
might be his own case, nor how reasonable it was that he should
do for another what he would another should do for him and ;
makes his sun to rise and his rain to fall upon the seeds and
plants, not only for the advantage of his own children, but of
all other men ; that therefore they should act as became the
nobility of their new birth, and imitate the example of such a
Father, who professed themselves to be his children. Per-
suaded by this, and much more that he discoursed to the same
effect, enough to convince the very Gentiles themselves, they
presently divided their help according to each one's rank and
quality. Those who by reason of poverty could contribute
nothing to the charge, did what was infinitely more, personally
laboured in the common calamity, an assistance infinitely beyond
allother contrrbutions. Indeed every one was ambitious to
engage under the conduct of such a commander, and in a service
wherein they might so eminently approve themselves to God the
Father, and Christ the Judge of all, and in the mean time to so
pious and good a bishop. And by this large and abundant
"*
Pont. Diac. in vit. Cypr. p. 5.
384 THE LIFE OF
charity groat advantagfo rcflountled not to themselves onl}', who
were "of the household of foith," but universally to all. And that
he might not be wanting- to any, he penned at this time his
excellent discourse concerning- Mortality ; wherein he so elo-
quently teaches a Christian to triumph over the fears of death,
and shews how little reason there is excessively to mourn for
those friends and relations that are taken from us.
X. This horrible pestilence, together with the wars which of
late had, and even then did, overrun the empire, the Gentiles
generally charged upon the Christian religion, as that for which
the gods were implacably angr}^ with the world. To vindicate
it from this common objection, Cyprian addresses himself in a
these evils that came upon the world could not be laid at the
door of Christianity, assigning other reasons of them, and among*
the rest their wild and brutish raofe afjainst the Christians,'
which had provoked the Deity to bring these calamities upon
them, as a just punishment of their folly and madness in per-
secuting a religion so innocent, and dear to heaven. The perse-
cution being over, a controversy arose concerning the time of
baptizing infants, started especially by Fidus,*^ an African bishop;
who asserted that baptism was not to be administered on the
third or fourth, but, as circumcision imder the Jewish state, to be
deferred till the eighth day. St. Cyprian, in a synod of sixty-
six bishops, determined was not necessary
this question, that it
''
Apud Cypr. p. 229. et Concill. vol. i. p. 508. ed. reg.
'
Finnil. Epist. ad Cypr. Ep. Ixxv. p. 229.
'" Ad Pompeium Epist. Ixxiv. p. 210.
VOL. I, 2 c
S86 THE LIFE OF
pressions, far enougli froiii that reverence and regard, vvliich St.
a book, which the young man, who looked over his shoulder,
read, but not daring to speak, intimated by signs what it was
for extending one of his hands at length, he made a cross-stroke
over it with the other, by which Cyprian presently guessed the
manner of his death. Whereupon he importunately begged of
the proconsul but one day's respite to dispose his affairs ; and
partly by the pleasingness of the judge's countenance, partly by
the signs which the young man made of what the proconsul
was noting in his book, he immediately gathei*ed that his request
was granted. And
it accordingly came to pass, both
just so
as to the time and manner of his martyrdom, that very day
twelve-month, whereon he had this vision, proving the period of
his life.
2c 2
:
and, if still they continued Christians, lose their heads; and that
matrons, having had their goods confiscated, should he hanished
that Xystus and Quartus had already suffered in the cemetery,
where their solemn assemhlies were held ; and that the go-
vernors of the city carried on the persecution with might and
main, spoiling and putting to death all that they could meet
with. This sad and uncomfortable news gave the good man
just reason to expect and provide for his own fate,' which he
waited and wished for every day. Indeed, some persons of the
highest rank and quality, his ancient friends, came to him, and
persuaded him for the present to withdraw, offering to provide
a secure place for his retreat. But the desire of that crown
which he had in his eye had set him ahove the world, and
made him deaf to their kind offers and entreaties. True it is,
that when news was brought that the officers were coming for
the next day, which was done in the house of one of the officers
that secured him, the people alarmed with the news of his
return and apprehension, flocking to the doors, and watching
'
Pont. Di;ic. in vit, Cypr. p. 8. " Epist. Ixxxi. ad Prcsb. et Duic. p. 238.
" Pont. Diac. in vit. Cypr, p. 8. Act. Pass. ap. Cypr. p. 12, etc.
SAINT CYPRIAN. S89
there all night. The next morning-, being Septemb. 14, Ann.
Chr. 258, he was led to the proconsuFs palace, who not being
yet come forth, he was carried aside into a by-place, where he
rested himself upon a seat, which by chance was covered with
a linen cloth, that so (says my author) even in the hour of his
passion he might enjoy some part of episcopal honour. The
length and hurry of his walk had put the infirm and aged man
into a violent sweat, which being observed by a military mes-
senger, who had formerly been a Christian, he came to him, and
offered to accommodate him with dry linen, instead of that wet
and moist that was about him: this he did in a pretended
civility, but really with design to have secured some monument
himself, first putting off his cloak, which he folded up, and laid
at his feet, and falling down upon his knees, recommended his
soul to God in prayer ; after which, he put off his Dalmatic, or
under-coat, which he delivered to the deacons, and so standing
in nothing but a linen vestment, expected the headsman, to
whom he commanded the sum of about six pounds to be given,"
the brethren spreading linen cloths about him to preserve his
blood from being spread upon the ground. His shirt-sleeves
being tied by Julian, (or, as one of the Acts calls him, Tullian,)
the j)resbyter, and Julian the sub-deacon, he covered his eyes
with his own hand, and the executioner did his office. His
body was by the Christians deposited not far off, but at night,
for fear of the Gentiles, removed, and with abundance of lights
and torches solemnly interred in the cemetery of Macrobius
Candidus a procurator, near tlie fish-ponds in the Mappalian
way. This was done anno 2.58, Valeriani et Gallieni 5 so ;
y Act. Pass. Cypr. ap. Cypr. p. 13. et vid. Brierw. tie Num. c. 14.
^ Aim. 4. Olympiad. 253. Indict. 13. » An. 1. Olymp. 269. Ind. 4. \'alcr. 2.
XVII. St. Cyprian, though starting late, ran apace in the Chris-
tian race. He
had a soul inflamed with a mighty love and zeal
for God, whose honour he studied by all ways to promote. A wise
and prudent gOA^ernor, a great asserter of the church's rights, a
resolute pairon and defender of the truth, a faithful and vigilant
overseer of his flock, powerful and diligent in preaching, prudent
in his determinations, moderate in his counsels, grave and severe
in his admonitions, pathetical and affectionate in his persuasives,
indulgent to the penitent, but inflexible to the obstinate and con-
tumacious.'' Infinite pains he took to reclaim the lapsed, and to
restore them to the church by methods of penance and due hu-
miliation:'^he invited them kindly, treated them tenderly; if
their minds were honest, and their desires sincere, he would not
rigorously examine their crimes by over-nice weights and mea-
sures ; so prone to pity and compassion, that he was afraid lest
find him at one time not only earnestly pressing others to con-
tribute towards the redemption of Christians taken captive by
the Barbarians,'' but himself sending a collection of a great many
thousand crowns. Nor was this a single act done once in his
alone was the chief and famous writer, eminent for his teaching
oratory, and writing books admirable in their kind that he had ;
greatest part of what remain are epistles, and all of them such
as admirably tend to promote the peace and order of the church,
and advance piety and a good life. A great number of tracts,
either dubious or evidently supposititious, are laid at his door,
" Loc. supra citat. " Ad ami. 250. n. 11.
P De Script, in TertuU. 'i De Script, in Cypr.
394 THE LIFE OF
some of tlicm very ancient, and most of tliem useful; it being his
liapj)incss, above all otber writers of the cburcb, (says Erasmus/)
tbat nothing is fathered upon him but what is learned, and
what was the issue of some considerable pen.
XIX. He was highly honoured, while he lived, not only by
men, consulted and apjjealed to in all weighty cases by foreign
churches, but by frequent visions and divine condescensions, (as
he was wont to call them,) whereby he was immediately warned
and directed in all important affairs and exigences of the church.
After his death his memory was had in great veneration, the
''
Loco supra citat.
» Vict, de Persec. Vandal. 1. i. p. 801. vol. ii. inter Patr. Orthodox, per Grynjeum.
• De Bell. Vandal. 1. i. c. 21. vid. Niccph. 1. xvii. c. 12.
His writings.
38. De Lapsis.
De Stella et Magis, ac innocentium nece. Adv. Judaeos, qui Christum insecuti sunt.
St. Gregory, where bom. His kindred and relations. The rank and quality of his
parents. His youthful studies. His study of the laws. His travels to Alexandria.
The calumny there fixed upon him, and his miraculous vindication. His return
through Greece. His studying the law at Berytus, and upon what occasion. His
and putting himself under the tutorage of Origen. The course of
fixing at Caesarea,
his studies. His panegyric to Origen at his departure. Origen's letter to him, and
the importance of it. His refusal to stay at Neocsesarea, and retirement into the
wilderness. His shunning to be made bishop of Neocajsarea. Consecrated bishop of
that city during his absence. His acceptance of the charge, and the state of that place
at his entrance upon it. His miraculous instruction in the great mysteries of Chris-
tianity. His creed. The miracles wrought by him in his return. His expelling
demons out of a Gentile temple, and the success of it. His welcome entrance into the
city,and kind entertainment. His diligent preaching to the people. His erecting
a church for divine worship, and its signal preservation. An horrible plague stopped
by his prayers. The great influence of it upon the minds of the people. His judging
in civil causes. His drying up a lake by his prayers, which had been the cause of an
implacable quarrel between two brothers ; and his restraining the overflowings of the
river Lycus. The signal vengeance inflicted upon two Jews, counterfeit beggars. The
fame and multitude of his miracles, and the authorities to justify the credibility of
them. The rage and cruelty of the Decian persecution in the regions of Pontus and
Cappadocia. His persuading the Christians to withdraw. His own retirement. The
narrow search made for him, and his miraculous escape. His betrayer converted. His
return to Neoctesarea, and instituting solemnities to the memories of the martjTs, and
the reasons of it. The inundations of the Northern nations upon the Roman empire.
His canonical epistle to rectify the disorders committed by occtision of those inroads.
His meeting with others in the synod at Antioch, about the cause of Paulus Samose-
tanus. His return home, age, and death. His solemn thanks to God for the flourish-
ing state of his church, and command concerning his burial. The excellent character
given of him by St. Basil. His writings. The charge of Sabellianism. St Basil's
Apology for him in that behalf. Modesty to be used in censuring the ancient fathers,
ond why.
increased the labour, was, that they were all written in Latin,
a language (as he confesses) great indeed and admirable, and
suited to the majesty of the empire but which he found trouble- ;
own country, applying himself to his old study of the law, which
he had now a great opportunity to improve by going to Berytus,
a city of Phoenicia, and a famous university for the profession of
the Roman laws whence Eunapius says of Anatolius," it was no
;
undertake this journey; the gratifying his sister witli his com-
pany, the impoi'tunity and persuasion of his friends, the coave-
uiency of residing at Berytus for the study of the law, and the
advantage of conveyance, and the public carriages that were
sent to fetch his sister and her retinue into those parts. Whe-
ther he actually studied at Berytus, cannot be gathered from any
account that he himself gives of it, nay, rather the contrary,'
though Hierom and others expressly affirm it. If he did, he
St.
stayed not long, quickly growing weary of his law-studies, being
tempted with the more pleasant and charming speculations of
philosophy. The fame of Origen, who at that time had opened
a school at Oaesarea in Palestine, and whose renown no doubt he
had heard sufficiently celebrated at Alexandria, soon reached
him, to whom he immediately betook himself; where meeting
accidentally with Firmilian,a Cappadocian gentleman,'' and after-
wards bishop of Caesarea and finding a more than
in that country,
ordinary sympathy and agreeableness in their tempers and
studies, they entered into a league of friendship, and jointly put
themselves, together with his brother Athenodorus, under the
tutorage of that so much celebrated master where Erasmus's :
read the scripture, and that with the most profound and diligent
attention, and not rashly to entertain notions of divine things,
or to speak of them without solemn })remeditation ; and not
only to seek but block, to pray with faith and fervency, it being
" Panegyr. ad Orig. p. 63, 64. o Ibid.
p. 55, 57.
I' Ibid, p. 7-1, 75. q Extat. in Orig. Philocal. c. 13.
;
gion and the fear of God were planted in that place. Phsedimus,*
bishop of Amasea, a neighbour city in that province, a man
endued with a prophetic spirit, had cast his eye upon our young
philosopher, as one whose ripe parts and piety did more than
weigh down his want of age, and rendered him a person fit to
be a guide of souls to the place of his nativity, whose relation
to the place would more endear the employment to him. The
notice hereof being intimated to him, he shifted his quarters, and,
as oft as sought for, fled from one desert and solitary shelter to
another, so that the good man, by all his arts and industry,
could not lay hold of him, the one not being more earnest to find
him out, than the other was vigilant to decline him. Phaedimus
at last despairing to meet with him, resolved however to go on
with his design ; and being acted opfjufj tlvl deiorepa, by a divine
and immediate impetus, betook himself to this pious stratagem,
(the like precedent probably not to be met with in the anti-
quities of the church,) not regarding Gregorius's absence, (who
• Greg. Nyss. in Greg. ThaTim,
vit. vol. iii. p. 543. • Id. ibid. p. 544.
VOL. I. 2d
402 THE LIFE OF
Avas at that time no less than three days"" journey distant froni
liim,) lie made and prayer to (jiod, and having de-
his address
clared that both himself and Gregory were at that moment
equally seen hy God, as if they were present, instead of im-
positionof hands, he directed a discourse to St. Gregory,
wherein he set him apart to God, and constituted him bishop of
that place ; and God, who steers the hearts of men, inclined him,
how averse soever before, to accept the charge, when, probably,
he had a more formal and solemn consecration.
VII. The province he entered upon was difficult, the city and
parts thereabouts being wholly given to the worship of demons,*
and enslaved to the observance of diabolic rites, there not being
above seventeen Christians in those parts, so that he must found
a church before he could govern it ; and, which was not the least
inconvenience, heresies had spread themselves over those coun-
tries, and he himself, though accomplished with a sufficient
furniture of human learning, yet altogether unexercised in
theological studies, and the mysteries of religion. For remedy
whereof, he is said to have had an immediate assistance from
heaven. For while one night he was deeply considering of these
things, and discussing matters of faith in his own mind, he had
a vision, wherein two august and venerable persons (whom he
imderstood to be St. John the Evangelist and the blessed
Virgin) appeared in the chamber where he was, and discoursed
before him concerning those i>oints of faith, which he had been
before debating with himself: after whose departure, he imme-
diately penned that canon and rule of faith which they had
declared, and which he ever after made the standard of his doc-
trine, and bequeathed, as an inestimable legacy and deposit urn, to
his successors, the tenor whereof we shall here insert, together
with the original Greek ; which, being very difficult to be exactly
rendered into our language, the learned reader (if he likes not
mine) may translate for himself.
Eh Qeo<i irarijp Xoyov ^o)v- " There is one God, the Fa-
T09, ao(pia<i v(f)€aTCi}ar]<; koX ther of the living Word, and of
Bvvdfjieo)<i, KoX xC'P^'K^T'ipo'i at- the subsisting Wisdom and
hlov re\eLo^,re\€iov<yevvr)TO)p- Power, and of Him Avho is his
irarrjp viov fj,ovoy€vov<i. EU Eternal Image, the perfect be-
'
Greg. Nyss. iu vit. Greg. Tliauin. vol. iii. p. 545.
SAINT GREGORY. 403
Kvpioc;, fi6vo<; in fjbovov, Qeo^ i/c getter of Him that is perfect,
©eov- %a/3ft/c:T7)/3 Kal eiKcbv t?i^ the P\ather of the only beg-otten
OeoTTjTo^, X0709 evepyot, ao(f)ca Son. There is one Lord, the
T?79 Twv oKwv avaTd(Teco<i irepi- only [Son] of the only [Fa-
CKTiKT], Kal Svva/uLfi rrj'i 0X779 ther] God of God, the cha-
KTiaeco^TTOtijTCKrj^vioqdXrjdcvo^i racter and image of the God-
aX.7]0ivov Trarpor d6paTo<i a- head, the powerful Word, the
opdrov, Kal d(j)OapTo^ d<pddp- comprehensive Wisdom, by
Tov, Kal dddvaro^ ddavdrov, which all things were made,
Kal dt^to<i diStov. Kal ev irvev- and the Power that gave being
fia dyt,ov, €K @€ov Ttjv virap- to the whole creation, the true
^Lv exov, Kal hi viov 7re^7]v6<;, Son of the true Father, the
SrjXaSr) Toi<i dv6pdiiiroL<i' eiKoov Invisible of the Invisible, the
rov viov, reXeiov reXeia ^cor). Incorruptible of the Incorrupti-
^covTcov alrla' Trrjjr) dyla, dye- ble, the Immortal of the Im-
OTi]'?, dytacTfxov ')(^op7]y6<i' ev m mortal, and the Eternal of
(pavepovrac 0eo? o irarrjp, 6 Him that is There
Eternal.
eVfc Trdyrcov, Kal ev Trdcrf Kal is one Holy Ghost, having its
2d 2
404 THE LIFE OF
tile temple, famous for oracles and divinations, where tliey spent
the night in prayers and hymns to God. Early in the morning
came the Gentile priest to pay the accustomed devotions to the
demons of the place, who had told them, it seems, that they
must henceforth relinquish it by reason of him that lodged
there ; he made his lustrations, and offered his sacrifices, but all
in vain, the demons being deaf to all importunities and invoca-
tions. Whereupon he burst out into a rage and passion, ex-
claiming against the holy man, and threatening to complain of
him to the magistrates and the emperor. But when he saw
him generously despising all his threatenings, and invested with
a power of commanding demons in and out at pleasure, he
turned his fury into admiration, and entreated the bishop, as a
further evidence of that divine authority that attended him, to
bring the demons once more back again into the temple : for
whose satisfaction he is said to have torn off a piece of paper, and
therein to have written these words, " Gregory to Satan, enter."
Which schedule was no sooner laid upon the altar, and the
usual incense and oblations made, but the demons appeared
again as they were wont to do. Whereby he was plainly con-
vinced that it was an authority superior to all infernal powers,
and accordingly resolved to accompany him but being unsatis- ;
their minds, as the only fit and proper habitations, which were
by the virtues of a good life to be trimmed and prepared, fur-
nished, and built up for heaven. But there wanted not many,
who were ready enough to set open their doors to so welcome
a guest ;among which especially was Musonius, a person of
greatest honour, estate, and power in the city, who entreated
him to honour his house with his presence, and to take up his
lodging there whose kindness, as being first offered, he ac-
:
remained entire, and not the least stone was shaken to the
ground.
XI. Gregory Nyssen reports one more memorable passage
St.
than the rest;^ which at his first coming to the place made his
finite numbers, that the theatre was quicklyfull, and the crowd
so great, and the noise so confused and loud, that the shows
could not begin, nor the solemn rites be performed. The people
hereupon universally cried out to the demon, " Jupiter, we be-
seech thee, make us room." St. Gregory, being told of this, sent
them this message, that their prayer would be granted, and that
greaterroom would be quickly made them than they desired.
in upon them, that turned
Immediately a terrible plague brake
all places with cries and
their music into weeping, and filled
dying groans. The distemper spread like wild-fire, and persons
were sick and dead in a few moments. The temples, whither
many fled in hopes of cure, were filled with carcases ; the
fountains and the ditches, whither the heat and fervour of the
infection had led them to quench their thirst, were dammed up
with the multitudes of those that fell into them ; some of their
own accord went and sat among the tombs, securing a sepulchre
to themselves, there not being living enough to perform the last
offices to the dead. The cause of this sad calamity being under-
stood, that it proceeded from their rash and foolish invocation of
the demon, they addressed themselves to the bishop, entreating
him to intercede with his God (whom they believed to be a more
potent and superior Being) in their behalf, that he would re-
strain that violent distemper that raged amongst them. He
did so, and the pestilence abated, and the destroying angel took
his leave. And the issue was, that the peojjle generally deserted
and the idolatrous rites of their
their temples, oracles, sacrifices,
religion, and took sanctuary in Christianity, as the securest
refuge, and the best way to oblige heaven to protect them.
XII. His known prudence, and the reputation of his mighty,
* Greg. Nyss. in vit. Greg. Tbaum. voL iii. p. 575.
SAINT GREGORY. 407
and (as my author calls them") apostolical miracles, advanced
him into so much favour and veneration with the people, that
they looked upon whatever he said or did, as the effect of a
divine power. And even in secular causes, where the case was
any thing knotty and difficult, it was usually brought to him,
whose sentence was accounted more just and impartial, more
firm and valid, than any other decision whatsoever. It hap-
pened that two brothers were at law about a lake, which both
challenged as belonging to that part of their inheritance their
father had left them. The umpirage of the case was left to
him who, by all the persuasive arts of insinuation, first endea-
;
were to try their titles by all the power which their tenants of
each side could bring into the field. To prevent which, the holy
bishop went the night before to the place, where he continued
all night in the exercises of devotion, and by his prayers to
heaven procured the lake to be turned into a parcel of dry and
solid ground removing thereby the bone of contention that was
;
* Greg. Nyss, in vit. Greg. Thaum. vol. iii. p. 554. ^ Id. ibid. p. 558.
408 THE LIFE OF
nerly keeping within its banks ; and the tradition adds, that the
staff itself grew up into a large spreading tree, and was shewed
to travellers, together with the relation of the miracle in my
author's days. In his return from Oomana,'^ (whither he had
been invited and importuned both by the magistrates and people,
to constitute a fit person bishop of that city,) he was espied by
two Jews, who, knowing his charitable temper, either out of
covetousness, or a design to abuse him, agreed to put a trick
upon him. To that purpose, one of them lies along upon the
ground and feigns himself dead, the other deplores the miserable
fate of his companion, and begs of the holy bishop, as he passed
by, to give somewhat towards his burial who taking off his coat
;
that was upon him, cast it upon the man, and went on his way.
No sooner was he gone out of sight, but the impostor came
laughing to his fellow, bad him rise, and let them make them-
selves merry with the cheat. He called, pulled,and kicked
him, but, alas, in vain; the comical sport ended in a real tragedy,
the man was dead indeed, his breath expiring that very moment
the garment was cast upon him, and so the coat really served
for what he intended it, as a covering to his burial.
XIII. In an age so remote from the miraculous ages of the
church, and after that the world has been so long abused by the
impostures of a church pretending to miracles as one of the
main notes and evidences of its Catholicism and truth, these
passages may possibly seem suspicious, and not obtain a very
easy belief with the more scrupulous reader to which perhaps
:
them wise and good men, and who lived themselves within less
than an hundred years after our St. Gregory; and what is more
considerable, were capable of deriving their intelligence from a
surer hand than ordinary ; their aged grandmother Macrina,
who taught them in their youth, and superintended their educa-
tion, having in her younger years been scholar and auditor of
our St. Gregory and from her, I doubt not, they received the
;
most material passages of his life, and the account of his mira-
cles, of many whereof she herself was capable of being an eye-
•*
Ad Neocsesar. Epist. cciv. (al. Ixxv. ) s. 6. vol. iii. p. 306,
^ Greg. Nyss. in vit. Greg. Thaum. vol. iii. p. 553. ' Ibid. p. 577.
e De Spir. Sanct. c. 29. s. 74. vol. iii. p. 62.
••
Greg. Nyss. in vit. Greg. Thaum. vol. iii. p. 567.
410 THE LIFE OF
of timber set uj) strait, in which the bodies of the tornientetl, as
they stood, were raked with nails that tore oft' the flesh and in- ;
some searched all private corners, others seized upon them that
fled; and some, who gaped for their neighbours' estates, took hold
many houses rid of their proper owners, but they were turned
into common gaols, the public prisons not being able to contain
the multitudes of Christians that were sent to them. You could
not go into the markets, or places of usual concourse, but you
might have seen some apprehended, others led to trial or execu-
tion, some weeping, others laughing and rejoicing at the common
misery no regard had to age, or sex, or virtue, or merit; but, as
:
pcinied with none but the Gentile priest whom he had converted,
and who ministered to him in the capacity of a deacon. And it
was but time he should withdraw, the enemy chiefly aiming at
him head of the party, and laying all possible snares to
as the
take him. Being informed where he lay concealed, they went
in vast numbers to hunt him out some besetting round the foot
;
the Goths broke in upon Pontus, Asia, and some parts of Greece.
Intolerable were the outrages which these barbarous people com-
mitted wherever they came, but especially upon the Christians,
whose goods they plundered, ravished their wives and daughters,
tortured their persons, and compelled them to offer sacrifice and
communicate in their idol-feasts : many of the renegadoes spoil-
ing their fellow-Christians; and some, under a pretence of finding,
stole or at least kept their neighbours' goods to their own use.
In this general confusion, a neighbour bishop of those parts
writes to St. Gregory of Neocaesarea, to beg his advice \\ hat to
' Hist. 1. ^-ii. c. 22.
"• Trcb. Poll, in vit. Gallien. c. 4, 5. vid. Zosim. Hist. 1. i. c. 36. et Treb. Poll in rit
Claud, c. 8.
;
every lie is the sj)awn and issue of the Devil, and that God will
destroy those that speak lies.
all
every thing by nice scruples ; that his earnest desire to gain the
Gentile made him less cautious and solicitous about exactness of
words, and that he indulged something to the apprehensions of his
adversary, that so he might get the better advantage upon him
in the greater and more important principles that this betrayed ;
less heed and care to deliver their minds with the utmost accuracy
and exactness, while, as yet, men of perverse minds had not
sown their tares, nor disturbed the church with the clamour of
their disputations, nor infected men's minds with their poisonous
and corrupt opinions.
* ApoL adv. Rufin. 1. ii. vol. ii. par. ii. p. 401.
His writings.
Genuine. Supposititious.
The place of his nativity. His family and relations. His conversion, how. His studies
under Origen. "Whether -a professed rhetorician. His succeeding Heraclas in the
catechetic school. His being constituted bishop of Alexandi-ia, and the time of it. A
preparatory persecution at Alexandria, how begun. The severity of it. The martyr-
dom of ApoUonia, and the fond honours done her in the church of Rome. The perse-
cution continued and promoted by Decius's edicts. The miserable condition of the
Christians. The sudden conversion and martyrdom of a guard of soldiers. ,
Dionysius
apprehended and carried into banishment, there to be beheaded. pleasant account A
of his unexpected deliverance by means of a drunken rout. His retirement into the
deserts. His return to Alexandria. The great number and quality of the Lapsed in
the late persecution. The contests about this matter. Dionysius's judgment and
practice herein. The case of Serapion. His dealing with Novatian about his schism,
and the copy of his letter to him. His being engaged in the controversy about rebap-
tization, and great moderation in it. His letter to pope Sixtus about a person bap-
tized by heretics. Valerianus the emperor's kindness to Christians. How turned
to cruelty. Dionysius brought before ^milian. His discourse with him, and reso-
lute constancy. He is condemned to be banished. His transportation into the deserts
of Libya. The success of his ministry there. Innumerable Barbarians converted to
the faith. Gallienus's relaxing the persecution. His letter to Dionysius granting
liberty to the Christians. Alexandria shut up by the usurpation of iEmilian, The
divisions within, and siege without. The horrible pestilence at Alexandria ; and the
singular kindness and compassion of the Christians there above the Heathens. Diony-
sius's confutation of Sabellius. His unwary expressions, and the charge against him.
His vindication, both by himself and by St. Athanasius. His writing against Nepos.
Nepos who, and what his principles and followers. Dionysius's encounter with the
heads of the party : his convincing and reducing them back to the orthodox church.
His engaging in the controversy against Paulus Samosetanus. The loose, extravagant,
and insolent temper and manners of that man. Dionysius's letter to the synod at
Antioch concerning him. The success of that affair. Dionysius's death. His writ-
ings and epistles. The loss of them bewailed.
VOL. I. 2 E
418 THE LIFE OF
borne very honourable offices, and himself to have lived some
time in great secular pomp and power.
born and bred He was
a Gentile, but by what particular occasion converted to Chris-
tianity, I know not, more than what we learn from a vision and
voice that spake to him, mentioned by himself,'' that by a dili-
gent reading whatever books fell into his hand, and an impartial
examination of the things contained in them, he was first brought
over to the faith. Having passed his juvenile studies, he put
himself under the institution of the renowned Origen,'' the great
master at that time at Alexandria, famous both for philosophic
and Christian which he is said by some to have
lectures : after
publicly professed rhetoric and eloquence ;'^ as indeed there seems
a more peculiar vein of fancy and rhetoric to run through those
fragments of his discourses which do yet remain. But I can
scarce believe that the Dionysius mentioned by Anastasius and
Maximus, and by them said of a rhetorician to be made bishop
of Alexandria, to have been the same with ours, were it for no
other reason, than that he is said to have written Scholia on the
works of St. Denys the Areopagite, which we are well assured
had no being in the world till many years after his time. Anno
232, Demetrius, bishop of Alexandria, being dead, Heraclas,
one of Origen's scholars, and his successor in the catechetic school,
succeeded in his room upon whose preferment, Dionysius, then
;
where he assigns the third year of that emperor, for the time of
his consecration to that place.
II. The first years of his episcopal charge were calm and
peaceable, till Decius succeeding in the empire, anno 24.9, turned
and combustion persecuting the Christians with
all into hurr}^ ;
»>
Epist. ad Philem. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vii. c. 7.
and eyes with sharp and afterwards leading him into the
reeds,
suburbs, stoned him. The next they seized on was a woman
called Quinta, whom they carried to the temple, where having
refused to worship the idol, she was dragged by the feet through
the streets of the city over the sharp flints, dashed against great
stones, scourged with whips, and in the same place despatched
by the same death. Apollonia, an ancient virgin, being appre-
hended, had all her teeth dashed out, and was threatened to be
burnt alive, who only begging a little respite, of her own accord
cheerfully leaped into the flames. Incredible it is, (but that the
case is evident from more instances than one,) with how fond a
veneration the church of Rome celebrates the memory of this
martyr.^ They infinitely extol her for the nobility of her birth,
the eminent piety and virtues of her life, her chastity, humility,
frequent fastings, fervent devotions, &c. (though not one syllable
of all this mentioned by any ancient writer ;) bring in a voice
from heaven styling her " the spouse of Christ,"''' and telling her,
that God had granted her what she had asked. They make
her the tutelar goddess or guardian of all that are troubled with
the tooth or headache, and, in many solemn offices of that
church, pray that at her intercession God would cure them of
those pains ; nay, formally address their prayers to her, that she
would intercede with God for them on that behalf, and " by her
passion obtain for them" (they are the very words of the prayer)
" the remission of all the sins which with teeth and mouth they
had committed through gluttony and speaking." Innumerable
are the miracles reported of her and to me it seems a miracle,
;
and to exceed all the rest, were it true, what is related of the
vast number of her teeth. For besides those which are preserved
f
Ep. ad Fab. ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 41.
2 E 2
420 THE LIFE OF
among- the relics of foreign churches, (which are not a few,) we
are told,''when king Edward, then afflicted with the tooth-
that
ache, commanded that all St. Apollonia's teeth in the kingdom
should be sought out and sent him so many were brought in, ;
that several great tuns could not hold them. It seems they
were resolved to make her ample amends for those few teeth
she lost at the time of her martyrdom. But it is time to return
to the Alexandrian persecution, where they every where broke
open the Christians' houses, taking away the best of their goods,
and burning what was not worth the carrying away. A Chris-
tian could not stir out day or night, but they presently cried
out, " Away with him to the fire." In which manner they con-
tinued, till quarrelling among themselves they fell foul upon one
another, and gave the Christians a little breathing-time from
the pursuits of their malice and inhumanity.
III. In this posture stood aifairs when Decius, having usurped
the empire, routed and killed his master Philip, his edict arrived
at Alexandria, which gave new life to their rage and cruelty.
And now they fall on afresh, and persons of all ages, qualities,
and professions are accused, summoned, dragged, tortured, and
executed with all imaginable severity ; multitudes of whom
Dionysius particularly reckons up,' together with the manner of
their martyrdom and execution. Vast numbers, that fled for
shelter to the woods and mountains,'' met with a worse death
abroad, than that which they sought to avoid at home, being
famished with hunger and thirst, starved with cold, overrun
with diseases, surprised by thieves, or worried by wild beasts,
and many taken by the Arabs and barbarous Saracens, who re-
duced them into a state of slavery more miserable than death
itself. In this evil time, though many revolted from the faith,
yet others maintained their station with a firm and unshaken
courage and several who till that moment had been strangers
;
Ammon, Zeno, and the rest of the military guard that stood at
'"
Vid. Chemnit. exam. Concil. Trid. par. iv. do rcliq. SS. p. 672.
» Ep. ad Fab. ap. Eubcb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vi. c. 41. ''
Id. ibid. c. 42.
SAINT DIONYSIUS. 421
the door, derided him as he was going- in, gnashing upon him
with their teeth, and making such grimaces, such mimic and
antic gestures, that all men's eyes were upon them. When
behold, on a sudden, before any one laid hand upon them, they
came into open court, and unanimously professed themselves to
be Christians: an accident wherewith the governors and the
assessorsupon the bench were strangely surprised and troubled.
The condemned were cheerful and courageous, and most ready
to undergo their torments, while the judges themselves were
amazed and trembled. Sentence being passed upon them, they
went out of court in a kind of pomp and state, rejoicing in the
testimony they were to give to the faith, and that God would so
gloriously triumph in their execution.
IV. St. Dionysius bore a common
tragedy, though
j^art in the
God was pleased to preserve him from the
and severest act, last
as a person eminently useful to his church. No sooner had
Sabinus the prefect received the imperial orders,' but he imme-
diately despatched a frumentarius^ or military officer, (whoso
place was to seize delinquents, and inquire out seditious
it
standing now the errand upon which they came) to dismiss him
and depart, at least to be so kind to him, as to take the soldiers'"
office upon them, and themselves behead him.- AVhile he was
thus passionately importuning them, they forced him to rise
and when he had thrown himself upon the ground, they began
to drag him out by the hands and feet: but quitted him not
long after, and returned, it is like, to their drunken sports. This
tragi-comic scene thus over, Caius and Faustus, Peter and Paul,
presbyters, and his fellow-prisoners, took him up, and leaving
the town, set him upon an ass, and conveyed him away into a
desolate and uncomfortable part of the deserts of Libya ;"" where
he, together with Peter and Caius, lay concealed till the storm
was over-past.
V. The persecution being in a great measure blown over,
by the death of Decius, Dionysius came out of his solitudes, and
returned to Alexandria, where he found the affairs of his church
infinitely entangled and out of order, especially by reason of
those great numbers that had denied the faith, and lapsed into
idolatry in the late persecution among which were many of the
;
siastic discipline of those times did not easily allow of, especially-
Vn. No sooner had he well rid his hands of this, but he was
engaged in another controversy, which involved and disturbed
the whole Christian church, I mean that concerning the rebap-
tizing those who had been baptized by heretics, so hotly disputed
between St. Cyprian and Stephen bishop of Rome. Dionysius,""
together with Firmilian bisliop of Csesarea in Cappadocia, and a
great many others in the East, stood on Cyprian's side, main-
taining that they ought to be baptized; but, however, carried
himself in it with great temper and moderation ; he distin-
guished between apostates who had received their baptism in
the catholic church, and those upon their return they did not
baptize, (as Cyprian also affirms,) but only admitted by imposi-
tion of hands and this rule and practice, he tells us,' he had
;
learned from his predecessor Heraclas but then for pure here- :
tics, who had no other baptism than what had been conferred
Dionysius, and with tears bewailed his own case and falling at ;
his feet, confessed that the baptism which he had received among
the heretics was nothing like this, but full of blasphemy and im-
piety; that for this reason he was infinitely troubled in con-
science, and durst not lift up his eyes to heaven, begging that he
might partake of the true and sincere baptism, and that grace
and acceptation that was conferred by it. This Dionysius
would not admit, telling him that his long communion with the
church was equivalent to it that he that had so often been pre-
;
sent at the giving of thanks, and said Amen to the prayers of the
congregation that had stood before the holy table, and had
;
taken the holy food into his hands, and been so very long par-
taker of the body and blood of our Lord Jesus Christ that ;
and with a firm faith and a good conscience approach the holy
sacrament all which notwithstanding did not quiet the man''s
:
mind, but that still he drooped under his fears and scruples,
durst not be present at the Lord's table, nor could hardly be
persuaded to come to the public prayers. What answer Sixtus
returned to this instance, is uncertain but by this it is evident, ;
that St. Dionysius was no zealot for the contrary opinion, though
it must be confessed, there was something particular in this, that
peace and prosperity of the empire. But this, alas, was but a
preparatory storm to that which followed in the reign of Vale-
rian, whom our Dionysius " makes to be the beast in the Revela-
tion, ^ " to whom was given a mouth speaking great things, and
family was full of pious and good men, and his house a kind of
church. But this weather was too fair and benign to last long.
Being seduced and deluded by an arch-magician of Egypt, he
was prevailed with to fall from his kindness and to persecute
the Christians, whom the conjurer represented as persons who,
by wicked and execrable charms, hindered the emperor"'s pros-
perity, colouring his pretence from their poAver over demons,
whose mischievous arts they obstructed, and whom they or-
dinarily banished with the speaking of a word and persuading ;
furnish him with persons, both for converse and for opportunities
of conversion. Cephro was the most rude and barbarous tract
of the Libyan desert, and Colythius (which, as Nicephorus tells
us," was that particular part of it to which Dionysius was de-
signed) the most uncomfortable, it is like, of all the rest. Thither
therefore was he sent, whom great numbers of Christians quickly
followed, partly from Alexandria, and partly out of other parts
of Egypt. At his first arrival he was treated with rudeness and
showers of stones, but had not been long there, before he not
» Lib. vi. c. 10.
428 THE LIFE OF
only civilized their barbarous manners, but reclaimed them from
idolatry,and brought them to embrace the Christian faith. And
as he met with success, so he shifted his quarters, preaching up
and down those Avild and disconsolate parts, and turning the
wilderness into a church. Nor could all the malice and thrcaten-
ings of the governor hinder, but that the Christians still assem-
bled at Alexandria, notwithstanding that their beloved bishop
was ravished from them, and that u3j]milian proceeded with the
utmost rigour against all that were brought before him ; killing
many with all the arts of cruelty, keeping others for the rack
and torment, loading them with chains, and thrusting them into
squalid and nasty dungeons, forbidding any of their friends to
come near them. Though even in the height of these afflictions
God supported their spirits, and animated others to venture in,
and to administer comfort and necessaries to them, not scrupling,
though with the peril of their heads, to inter the bodies of the
martyrs.
XI. How long Dionysius continued in his banishment, I find
not ; probably till Valerian was taken captive by the king of
Persia, anno 259, when Gallienus his son ruled alone, who from
the unhappiness of his father took the measures of his carriage
towards the Christians: he saw that while he favoured the
Christians, heaven smiled upon his designs, and things went on
in a smooth and uninterrupted course but when once he began ;
to bear hard upon them, the tide turned, and the divine ven-
geance pursued and overtook them and that therefore nothing ;
has been long since granted by us. And for this end Anrelius
Cyrenius, our high steward, shall keep the copy of this edict
which we have now granted."
The like rescript he also sent to other bishops, giving them the
free leave of their coemeteria, the places where they buried their
dead, and often assembled for their religious solemnities, espe-
cially the memorials of the martyrs.
XII. Scarce was Dionysius quietly resettled at home, when
he was alaruniM by another accident, which forced him for a
while again, if not to retire, at least to keep so close, that he
was not capable to execute his charge. -iEmilianus the prefect,*^
partly by his own ambition, and partly forced by an unhappy
accident wherein he was involved, took the empire upon him
the Roman army in Egypt joining with him, partly out of dis-
like to Gallienus, partly out of aifection to ^milian, who Avas
a brisk active man. Immediately he seized upon the store-
houses, that country being the common granary of the empire.
Gallienus, being acquainted with the news, ordered Theodotus,
his general, to march with an army into those parts, who besieged
Alexandria, and reduced the city to great extremity for they :
man to travel from East to West, than to pass from one part of
Alexandria to another, so barbarous and inhuman were the out-
rages committed there. The issue was, that Gallienus's party
prevailed to let in Theodotus and his army, who seized the
tyrant, and sent him to the emperor, who caused him to be
strangled in prison.
XIII. How stormy and tempestuous is the region of this lower
world ! one wave perpetually pressing upon the neck of another.
The persecution was seconded by a civil war and a cruel famine,
and that no sooner over, but a tei-rible plague followed close at
t Treb. Poll, in vit. M\m\. c. •22. et in vit. Gall. c. 4.
began to fall sick, they presently cast them out, ran from their
dearest friends and relations, and either left them half dead in
K Dionys. ad Fratr. ap. Eiiseb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vii. c. 22. ' Sec Exod. xii. 30.
SAINT DIONYSIUS. 431
Testament gave the law under the notion of the Father in the ;
New, was made man in the capacity of the Son ; and descended
afterwards upon the apostles in the quality of the Holy Ghost.
Dionysius, as became a vigilant pastor of his flock, presently
undertakes the man and while he managed the cause with too
;
Dionyslus, to strike the controversy dead, while his hand was in,
wrote a book " Concerning the Promises," (which St. Hierom,
forgetting what he had it was written
truly said elsewhere," that
against Nepos, tells us*^ was written against Irenasus bishop of
Lyons, mistaking the person probably for his opinion,) in the first
part whereof he stated the question, laid down his sense con-
cerning it ; in the second he treated concerning the Revelation
of St. John, (the main pillar and buttress of this opinion,) where,
both by reason and the testimony of others, he contends that it
was not written by St. John the Apostle and Evangelist, but by
another of that name, an account of whose judgment herein we
have represented in another place.''
" De Script, in Dionys. ° Praefat. in 1. xviii. Com. in Esai. vol. iii. p. 478.
P Antiq, Apost. Life of St. John, num. 14.
VOL. I. 2 F
;
is but one person in the Godhead ; that our blessed Saviour was,
though a holy, yet a mere man, Avho came not down from hea-
ven, but was of a mere earthly extract and original, in whom
the Word (which he made not any thing distinct from the
Father) did sometimes reside, and sometimes depart from him
with abundance of the like wicked and senseless propositions.
Besides all which, he was infinitely obnoxious in his morals,' (as
few men but serve the design of some lust by schism and bad
opinions,) covetous without anj^ bounds, heaping up a vast
estate, (though born a poor man's son,) partly by fraud and sa-
crilege, partly by cruel and unjust vexations of his brethren,
partly by fomenting differences, and taking bribes to assist the
weaker party. Proud and vain-glorious he was beyond all mea-
sure, affecting pomp, and train, and secular power, and rather to
be styled a temporal prince than a bishop ; going through the
streets and all public places in solemn state, with persons walking
before him, and crowds of people following after him. In the
church he caused to be erected a throne higher than ordinary,
and a place which he called secretum, after the manner of civil
railed in, with curtains hung before it, where they sat to hear
causes. He was wont to clap his hand upon his thigh, and to
stamp with his feet upon the bench, frowning upon and re-
proaching those who did not theatrically shout and make a noise
while he was discoursing to them ; wherein he used also to reflect
upon his predecessors and the most eminent persons that had
been before him, with all imaginable scorn and petulancy, mag-
nifying himself as far beyond them. The h3inns that were or-
dmarily sung in honour of our Lord, he abolished as late and
novel, and instead thereof taught some of his proselyted females
upon the Easter solemnity to chaunt out some which he had
composed in his own commendation, to the horror and astonish-
ment of all that heard them procuring the bishops and pres- ;
T Ruscb. Hist. Eccl. 1. vii. c. 27. Epiph. Haercs. 1. Ixv. c. 1. Athanas. de Synod. Arim.
et Scleuc. s. 43. vol. i. p. 757. Nicepb. 1. vi. c. 27.
' Epist. Synod, ii. Antiocb. ap. Euseb. Hist. Eccl, 1. ^-ii. c. 30.
SAINT DIONYSIUS. 435
shew his resentment of the thing, he not only wrote not to the
man, but gave him not so much as the civility of a salutation.
In this synod the crafty fox hid his head, dissembling his senti-
ments, and palliating his disorders, and confessing and recanting
what he was not able to conceal, so that for the present he still
fused to submit to the sentence of the council, and for some time
maintained his station by the power of Zenobia, a queen in those
parts, and a Jewish proselyte, whose favour he had courted and
obtained; and how at last, upon the bishops' appeal, he was turned
out, and the synodical decree executed by the immediate order
of the emperor Valerian, is without the limits of my business to
inquire.
* Euseb. Hist, Eecl. 1. vii. c. 27. et c. .30.
2f 2
4.*i6 THE LIFE OF
XVIII. A little after thin first synod at Antioch died our St.
Denys, in the twelfth year of Gallienus,' anno 265, when he had
sitten seventeen years bishop of Alexandria, dying probably the
same year and on the same day with St. Gregory Thaumaturgus,
whose memories are accordingly celebrated September 17, iu the
calendar of the Roman church. His memory was continued at
Alexandria (as we learn from Epiphanius") by a church dedi-
cated to him, but flourished much more in the incomparable vir-
tues of his past life, and those excellent writings he left behind
him, which mainly consisted of vast numbers of epistles and it ;
is probable all his Avritings were nothing else, his larger tracts
Ann.
Chr.
CHRONOLOaiCAL TABLE. 439
Ann.
Chr.
440 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
Ann. Roman
Chr. Emperors.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 441
Ann.
Ckr.
U2 CHRONOLOGICAL TAIJLE.
A nn.
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 443
Attn.
Chr.
44t CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
Ann.
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 445
Ann.
Chr.
75
76
44(j CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
Ann.
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 447
Ann.
Chr.
448 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
A 1171
Chr
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 449
.'/ mi.
Vhr.
125
126
450 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
Ann.
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 451
A7m.
Chr.
4.->2 CIIRONOLOGKJAL TAIJLE.
Jn«.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 45S
Ann.
Clu:
454 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
Ann.
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 455
Ann.
Chr.
199
4.>6 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
Ann.
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 457
A n
Chr.
222
223
224
225
458 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
A nil.
Chr.
• CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 45<r
A nn.
Chr.
247
UO CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. *
Ami.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 461
A nn.
Clir.
462 CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
A7in,
Chr.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE. 463
Ann.
Chr.
VINCKNT, PRINTER, OXFORD.
*' 'o^'n
?i^...
mmB-^m^>^^
^^^*^i^:
'>]i^^v;-
^^
l4;
COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY LIBRARIES ItVj^,
^- fAt'
•{^i-sa^K^'x